Id | Vlad | Saved | Scrape Time | Status | Scrape Result | Original Ad | Adarchiveid | Creative Links | Title | Body | Cta Type | Link Url | Pageid | Page Name | Page Profile Uri | Page Like Count | Collationcount | Collationid | Currency | Enddate | Entitytype | Fevinfo | Gatedtype | Hasuserreported | Hiddensafetydata | Hidedatastatus | Impressionstext | Impressionsindex | Isaaaeligible | Isactive | Isprofilepage | Cta Text | Pageinfo | Pageisdeleted | Pagename | Reachestimate | Reportcount | Ad Creative | Byline | Caption | Dynamic Versions | Effective Authorization Category | Display Format | Link Description | Link Url | Page Welcome Message | Creation Time | Page Profile Picture Url | Page Entity Type | Page Is Profile Page | Instagram Actor Name | Instagram Profile Pic Url | Instagram Url | Instagram Handle | Is Reshared | Version | Branded Content | Current Page Name | Disclaimer Label | Page Is Deleted | Root Reshared Post | Additional Info | Ec Certificates | Country Iso Code | Instagram Branded Content | Spend | Startdate | Statemediarunlabel | Actions |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
2,359,519 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359117}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
Read more FREE chaptersđ | This wasnât the first time I received photos of Owen cheating on me. The blonde hair and slender build of the woman kissing him reminded me of my best friend Josie. Could it beâŚ? No, she would never do that to me! With trembling fingers, I dropped my phone. How could my husband cheat on me?! I thought I was the most important person in his life. After 7 horrible years at the orphanage, I was adopted by Owenâs family. I saved Owen's life when we were young. His family was so grateful that they took me in. How could Owen betray me after everything we went through?! We grew up together and were always inseparable. We fell in love and got married when we were 22 years old. I canât believe that was almost 3 years ago now. But Owen had been acting very strange lately. These photos seemed to explain why⌠I had to confront him. âOwen?â I called out. âOwen, where are you?â He didn't answer. He must be upstairs. I walked up the stairs and heard him talking to his friend Simon on the phone. As I was about to knock on the door, I overheard: âNo, I donât think I love her anymore.â His words gave me icy chills. âYou should be happy, Simon. I know you like Noah. If we get a divorce, you can have her.â Owen continued. âHe said...what?â I couldnât believe my ears and cried in my heart, âHow dare he talk about me like that? I wasn't just some object he could give away! â Hearing Owenâs frivolous talk with his friend, I felt sick. I grew up with him and got married for so many years. But he recently acted like a stranger. Did he have a new love? Why did he treat me in such a cruel way?! I was almost to open the door to question him, but suddenly I hesitated, âQuestion him and then what? Do I want divorce? No, I donât think so. Anyway, I have to calm down. At least I need to have a talk with him first. I need to know what happened to our marriage.â So, I quietly made my way back downstairs. I tried to forget about what I heard by preparing dinner. As I was dishing up our pasta, the delightful scent of italian herbs drifted through the house. I heard Owen come downstairs. âJust in time for your dinner, hun!â I said, trying to sound normal. But he was wearing his coat and gelled hair. He looked handsome as ever and ready to leave. I could smell his aftershave - my favorite smell in the world. âWhere are you going? Itâs getting late and dinner is ready.â I said. âDinner with a client. Donât wait for me.â Owen replied and left without hesitation. I sat alone at the table, looking at the food Iâd carefully prepared for him. Tears were streaming down my cheeks. I listlessly turned the spaghetti round and round with my fork. I wasnât hungry. After storing away the leftovers, I stared at the TV for a while. Nothing could get my mind off of Owen and whoever that blonde tramp was. I made my way to the bathroom. I washed my mascara stained face and looked at myself in the mirror. Why did he stop loving me? Am I not beautiful enough? Did I not do enough to make him happy? I gave my body a scrutinizing glance, suddenly seeing all the parts of me that werenât perfect. My belly wasnât as flat as it used to be. Maybe I shouldâve had my lips done, like my friend Josie. Mine always used to be fuller than hers. But now she had the plump, luscious lips of a model. After washing up, I went to bed. Dropping my face into my pillow, I felt miserable. I tried to fall asleep, but my mind kept wandering. Where was Owen? And with who? Will he even come home tonight? At 1 am, I finally heard the key turn in the front door. From all the stumbling I could hear Owen was very drunk. I swiftly made my way downstairs to help him to the bedroom. He started kissing me and said a blurry name. I tried to identify what it was. After he repeated it many times, I was shocked. It sounded like... âJoiseâ! âJosieâŚ? Were you with Josie?â I asked with panic in my voice. I helped his heavy body into bed. He grunted some words I couldnât understand. I couldnât believe my husband cheated on me with my best friend. I cried and pleaded with him to see that it was me, not Josie. He pushed me away. As his head hit the pillow, he started snoring right away. Looking at my husband - completely drunk - I didnât recognize the man I knew and loved. I tried to sleep next to him. But it felt like I was lying next to a stranger. I went downstairs and sat on the sofa all night, wide eyed, thinking about what happened between us. The next morning, Owen came downstairs after a shower. I wanted to ask him how he was feeling. He must be hungover. When I got up from the couch, I felt very weak and feverish. The sleepless night must've made me sick. âOwen, are you OK?â I asked as I struggled to walk over to him. I really wanted to hug him. If only for a sense of comfort. He swept my arms away and told me to leave him alone. I was so weak and dizzy, his push made me fall. Owen was stunned for a moment. Then he said coldly, âIf youâre sick, go see a doctor.â I scrambled up to my feet, and looked at him with a shocked expression. Suddenly, his phone rang. As he lifted it to his ear, the screen lit up. I could clearly see who was calling: âJosieâ. Chapter 2 - Hope Noah My heart sank when Owen picked up the phone. The screen clearly said âJosieâ. He answered: âHello? Yes, of course, sir. I can take a look at those documents for you.â I couldn't believe Owen was lying to my face. He glanced at me, then quickly walked over to the kitchen. When he thought I couldn't hear him, his voice softened. He sounded so sweet. Although I couldnât hear his words, the way he spoke to Josie reminded me of the beginning of our romance. Owen was still trying to hide his betrayal from me. He must have forgotten that he gave away his secret last night, when he called me Josie. Those pictures on my phone left no doubt. He was cheating on me, with my best friend. I leaned up against the wall. I felt weakened by my fever and this emotional rollercoaster. I stared at my husband as he came back inside the living room. He avoided my eyes. It felt as if he had become a stranger. In the past, he wouldâve never let me suffer like this. âIâll pick you up later.â Owen said, ready to go. I grabbed his hand and begged him to stay with me. âPlease, donât leave. I'm sick, Owen. I need to see a doctor. Iâm too weak to be all by myself.â He was very impatient. He said he had some important business to deal with. I couldnât help crying as I watched him leave. My husband and my best friend were betraying me, behind my back. I walked up the stairs slowly, carefully holding on to the railing. I was so weak and fragile. Bed rest was my best option right now. I really needed my husband to take care of me. When we got married, he vowed to me: âIn sickness and in health, in good times and badâ. This was definitely a bad time, and he was nowhere to be seen. When I woke up from my nap, I felt even worse. In my feverish haze, I reached for my phone and tried to call Owen. I opened my recent contacts and found that Owen had not had any calls with me these days at all. I had to open the contact list to look for him, but a few minutes later I dialed out with a headache and dizziness. Almost immediately I heard: âHello, Noah?â The voice on the phone sounded very deep. I figured Owen got a cold after his late night out. âIâm so sick, Iâm so weak. I need to get to the hospital. Please, come back, pleaseâŚâ I pleaded, my voice weak and trembling. âIâll be right there.â Said the voice on the phone and hung up right away. His voice sounded different from before. And his tone was a little urgent. Whatâs wrong? I didnât have enough energy to think about it. At least he might still care about me. That comforted me a lot. Before long, there was a heavy knock on the door. Did Owen leave his key? I opened the door, expecting to look into Owen's gray eyes, but found Raymond's kind, hazel brown eyes instead. What was he doing here? Raymond was Owenâs uncle. He was only several years older, but very mature. He was tall, tanned and handsome. His chocolate brown hair matched his eyes. With his strong, square jaw and muscular body. I always thought Owen was one of the most attractive men I knew. It wasn't until Raymondâs appearance that I realized how dominant the handsome genes are in this family in terms of good looking. After living in Australia for most of his life, he had come back several years ago to take over his familyâs business. By now, he was the most successful CEO in the city. Although all women admired him, he remained single. âDoes Owen know youâre sick?â Raymond said, looking concerned. âHow did you know I'm sick? Do I look that terrible?â I asked, suddenly aware that I was only wearing my little nightgown, had no make-up on and had my hair up in a messy bun. Raymond smiled. âDon't worry, Noah. I got your call earlier.â Oops, I must have pressed the number of âOwenâs Bossâ instead of âOwenâ. I apologized for the inconvenience. âYou are a member of our family, Noah. Itâs my duty to take care of you. And you are never an inconvenience to me.â Raymond said as he took me by the arm to support me. He led me to his streamlined, dark gray Mercedes to drive me to the hospital. I sat down on the cream colored leather seat. His car smelled brand new. The seat was heated, which helped warm me up, but I was still shivering. Raymond took off his suede blazer and handed it to me. His simple act of kindness made me feel warm, inside and out. âThank you, Raymond. This means a lot to me.â I said with a relieved sigh. âOf course, Noah. Whenever you need me, Iâll be there.â He responded. He still had a slight Australian accent. He asked me what happened. I wouldnât have shared my familyâs private problems with another man who I didnât even know very well. But at that time, I was on the very edge of a breakdown. I really needed someone to talk to. Yet when I lost two of my closest persons on the same day, my husband and my best friend, who else could I talk to? âI donât think Owen loves me as much as before. It seems that he has some secrets with another woman, who used to be my best girlfriend. I couldn't sleep all night. I think that's what caused my fever.â I concluded. I was in tears again by the time I finished the story. âHow could they do this to you? You are the best thing that's ever happened to Owen. If he can't see that, he is an even bigger idiot than I thought!â Raymond shouted out. His shocked, angry expression showed me how much he cared. âPlease, don't say a word about this to Owen. I haven't confronted him yet. I need to do this myself.â I responded. We sat quietly for a while, his hand resting very close to my thigh. I felt so weak and miserable. But his presence helped. When seeing the private doctor, I tried to get out of the car but almost fell. Raymond flung an arm around me, just in time to catch me. I blushed as I looked up to him. My face was very close to his. His piercing eyes looked at me with an intensity I hadnât seen before. I smelled something fresh. It might be his aftershave. I remembered Owen also used it, and I always told he that I love what he smelled. But I found Raymondâs aftershave smelled a little special. âRaymond? Noah? What are you doing?!â I suddenly heard Owenâs angry voice. Chapter 3 - Truth Noah Raymond quickly let go of me as Owen approached us. Just before taking a step back. I stumbled over to my husband. I wanted to lean on him for support, but he didnât seem to care about me at all. All I could read on his face was anger. I tried to be strong and stand by myself, shivering with fever. âSo, youâve got a new love, huh? I saw you flirting with my uncle!â Owen spat his angry words at me. I turned pale. How could he say this to me? Especially after what he had done? I wasnât the one who couldnât be trusted! âOwen! How dare you talk to her like that! Itâs not our familyâs manner!â Raymond berated him. He was fuming with rage at the injustice. He also knew about Owen's betrayal. Owen was a little timid when Raymond got angry. Although Raymond was only 31 years old, he had become a successful CEO. He had idolized Raymond when he was a child. And now, Raymond was also his boss. Owen had recently started working at his company. Raymondâs fists were clenched and his tense muscles were visible through his buttoned up shirt. He looked like he was about to hit Owen. I didnât want them to fight over me, so I tried to calm them both down. âRaymond, itâs okay. Owen will take me in to see a doctor. Thank you for driving me here.â I said gratefully. âPlease, donât say anything about Josieâ, I tried to tell him mentally through the look in my eyes. He nodded slightly, as if he understood. He relaxed and his eyes softened when he looked at me. I turned back to my angry husband. I couldnât detect any sign of trust in his eyes. I supposed he should be concerned about my health rather than the relationship between me and Raymond. âOwen, I can explain. I tried to call you, but I was so sick I accidentally dialed Raymondâs number. He brought me to see the doctor. You should be grateful to him. Without him I would still be miserable in bed, all alone.â Owen grabbed me and said, âWell, I was just on my way to come and get you. Then I saw you get out of uncle Raymond's car and âfallâ right into his arms.â He looked at Raymond with an arrogant smirk. âYou can go back to your important job now, uncle. Iâll look after my wife.â Raymondâs eyes were cold, but he respected my wishes. He didn't object. After warning Owen that heâd better take good care of me, he got back in his car and drove off. Although I was glad I could lean on Owen, something didn't feel right. I realized I was still wearing his suede jacket. It was so soft and warm, protecting me from the cold autumn wind. When the doctor dealt with my fever, Owen didnât want to speak to me, let alone look at me. He was engaging himself in typing on his phone. The doctor told me I shouldn't have waited much longer. My fever was so high I could have fainted. After getting examined and taking medicine for my fever, Owen drove me home. We sat next to each other in our car that held many memories. All our road trips and getaways together. Those times were over now. After an uncomfortable silence, I decided to address the elephant in the room. âOwen⌠What is going on? Do you still love me? Do you still regard me as your wife?â I asked. âSo what? Whose wife do you want to be?â Owen hissed. I couldn't believe how horrible he was to me after what he had done. âI know you cheated on me, Owen.â I uttered with pain in my voice. âYouâve been seeing Josie, right?â Owen stopped the car with a jerk and pulled over. We sat in silence for a while as he processed my words. âWhat do you know, Noah?â he pressed, looking me in the eyes at last. I finally confronted him about all the things that had been weighing heavily on my heart. I explained: âSomeone sent me photos of the two of you together. The first time, they didn't show your face. So I didnât want to believe it. But in the ones I received yesterday, it was clearly you. All those nights, when you told me you had to leave town for business... You lied to me. You spent them at a hotel with another woman! Then, last night, you kissed me and called me Josie. And this morning, I saw it was her calling you. You pretended it was a client. âOwen, we have grown up together since we were kids. I always thought we knew each other the most and could trust each other. I canât believe you would cheat me like that!â I cried, âOwen, did you fall in love with another woman... Is she my best friend Josie?!â His eyes showed a moment of doubt. Then, resolution. His mouth tightened as he clenched his jaw. Just when I thought he wouldnât answer, Owen said: âItâs true. I love her. I love Josie.â Chapter 4 - Hurt Noah I just couldn't accept it. I loved him so much. How could he cheat on me? âWhy, Owen? I thought we loved each other. I thought we would be together forever. Did I do something wrong?â I cried. Owen didn't respond. He drove us home in silence. His cruelty was too much for me to bear. I stared at the raindrops on the window. I felt more depressed than ever. That afternoon, Owen left again. I tried having some food and a nap, hoping that would help me heal. But I just couldn't fall asleep until Owen came back home in the early evening. I had to talk to him. I got out of bed and met him at the top of the stairs. âOwen, we need to talk about what happened. You can't keep going out and avoiding me.â He was obviously drunk again. All he said was, âI donât have anything to say to you. I am moving out, Noah. I supposed our years of marriage is a mistake!â I took his hands in mine and begged him to stay and try to work it out. But he shook off my hands and pushed me away. I was standing right on the edge of the staircase. His push made me lose balance, and I tumbled down the stairs. I managed to grab onto the railing so I didnât fall all the way down. But my head hit the wall when I tried to break my fall. I felt my forehead was bleeding. It was so painful that I couldnât get up. I thought Owen would help me, but only heard: âYou lost your footing. Itâs not my fault.â There was a sudden knock on the door. Owen stumbled past me down the stairs. âRaymond? What are you doing here? Now is not a good time.â âI came to ask you what is going on. You need to give me an explanation. You havenât ⌠Noah?â Raymond suddenly saw me sitting on the stairs behind Owen. He pushed Owen aside and ran over to me in alarm. Seeing my messy hair and injured forehead, he instantly knew what happened between us. He punched Owen in the face. âThis is how you treat your wife?! I donât believe you. Donât you see Noah is bleeding? Did you hurt her? What a disgusting thing you smelled! You drunk idiot!â Raymond raged at his nephew. I didnât even have time to explain. Raymond immediately wrapped me up in his suit jacket and took me to see the doctor. âTwice in one day? That must be a record.â The doctor said wearily. I gave her a wry grin and answered, âNot by choiceâŚâ The doctor took care of my wounds. I needed a couple of stitches and had some pretty bad bruises, but I would be okay. Thankfully, I didn't break any bones. It was getting dark outside. The autumn breeze was busy blowing the leaves off the maple trees surrounding the hospital parking lot. Raymond and I made our way back to the car. Our feet rustled through the thick carpet of yellow, brown and scarlet red leaves. After my second - and hopefully last - doctor's visit of the day, we sat next to each other in silence. We were back in his beautiful Mercedes. I could get used to these comfortable, heated seats. I felt a bit embarrassed. Raymond kept on having to save me. At least this time, I was wearing clothes and make-up, and my brown hair was neatly tied in a long, wavy ponytail. âI donât normally need so much help, you know.â I broke the ice. âI happen to be a strong, independent woman most of the time.â Raymond laughed heartily. âJokes aside, I'm really grateful for everything you've done for me.â I continued. âWhy did you come over tonight, Raymond?â âOwen hadnât come to work at the company for days. And I wanted to speak to him about what happened this morning, with you. I tried to call him, but he never answered. I decided to come over. To see for myself what was wrong with him.â Raymond explained. âI just canât believe what he did to you!â He continued. âIf he ever does anything like that again, please tell me. Iâll teach him a lesson.â His stern face showed how much he meant it. I took a deep breath. He had a way of making me feel safe and secure. âThank you, Raymond. Iâm okay now. It was an accident. Owen didnât push me off the stairs on purpose. He didnât mean to hurt me.â I explained. Raymond looked a little angry, but he still carefully drove me home. âGoodbye, Raymond. Thank you again, for everything.â I said with feeling as he hugged me. âBye, Noah. Itâs been my pleasure. Please be safe. Call me if you need anything.â He said. He gently patted me on my head as comfort as if I was a little girl and got back in his car. His simple actions made me feel warm. I thanked him and walked home. I entered the house. It was quiet and dark downstairs. I walked up to our room. When I opened our bedroom door, all I could see was Owen and Josie kissing on the bed. Chapter 5 - The Necklace Noah I couldnât believe my eyes! While the hours I was leaving, my husband was screwing with my best friend in my room! Didnât he remember I got hurt because of him?! How ridiculous! Even though I had seen Owen and Josieâs betrayal before in photos, witnessing it in real life was way worse. It felt like a million knives stabbed me in the chest. My heart shattered. âHow dare you cheat on me in our home! In our own bed, for Godâs sake!â I cried out. They hadnât heard me open the bedroom door over the romantic music that was playing. They turned around with shocked looks on their faces. If I wasnât so devastated, it mightâve been funny. Owen's mouth had lipstick smears all over it, and Josieâs blonde hair was disheveled. They were both in their underwear. Clothes were spread out all over our bedroom floor. I tried to hold back my tears. I didn't want to show them my pain. My crying might come across as weakness. I demanded an explanation. âI donât believe this. Owen! Did you forget I am your wife?! Josie, why did you betray me too?! I treat you as my best friend. How dare you take my husband away from me!â I insisted. Josie hid away in Owenâs arms. Owen comforted her gently, then snapped at me: âYouâve already seen us together anyway, haven't you, Noah?â âI am done with you.â He continued. âOur whole relationship was based on a lie. Josie shouldâve been with me all along!â I didnât understand. âWhat are you talking about, Owen?â He held up a delicate golden necklace with a tear shaped ruby that had been resting on Josieâs collarbone. âRemember this, Noah? The truth has finally come out. It was Josie who saved my life all those years ago, not you. You pretended that it was you in front of my parents. Youâve made her suffer long enough!â I was shocked. Why did Josie have my necklace? I couldn't believe her betrayal. I tried to explain to Owen that I lost that necklace before I was adopted by his family. I told him I would never lie to him. Especially about something so important. But Owen didnât believe me. âJosie,â I cried. âHow could you do this to me? Why would you steal my necklace? You know how much it means to me! Weâve been best friends since the orphanage, havenât we? Does that mean nothing to you?â âNoah, you know this necklace has always belonged to me. I was the one who saved Owen. But you stole my life to be adopted,âJosie played innocent with me, âI should have been the one who grew up with Owen! I see you as my sister, so I never attempted to reveal your lie until Owen found this necklace in my old jewelry box several months ago.â This convinced Owen even more that I had been bullying her. He wrapped his arms around her. Over his shoulder, when he couldnât see, Josie gave me a quick, mean smirk. I knew Josie had a mean side. She always had, even when we were kids. But so far, she had only taken it out on her boyfriends and whoever got on her bad side, not on me. I never thought she might treat me in such a mean way! I had searched everywhere but couldn't find my necklace. It turned out that she was the thief who was always around me. How could she tell such outrageous lies as if it were naturalďź I left the bedroom, rushed downstairs and broke down on the couch. Oh, what a nightmare! How could I make Owen see the truth? A little later, Owen and Josie came downstairs, all dressed up again. Josie was wearing her Prada pumps and the sleek, mint green dress I gifted her for her birthday. It accentuated her long legs and slender silhouette. I had to admit, she looked beautiful. I used to dress in a simple way such as simple jeans, white blouse and sneakers. Maybe I looked less attractive compared to Josie. Owen had an arm around Josieâs waist and warned me, âYouâd better stay out of our life from now on. Iâll move to another villa with Josie.â I couldn't believe it. After 3 years of marriage, he trusted her story over mine. And now he wanted nothing to do with me. We used to be happily married. Our whole lives, ever since I saved him, we had been so close. We used to laugh together, cry together, play pranks on each other⌠But now, everything changed, simply because of a necklace. In fact, ânecklaceâ is just an excuse for his betrayal. I didnât believe our years of affection couldnât prove my heart. âNoah, my life was ruined by you. You owe me that.â Josie said. âOne day youâll both regret this. I didnât do anything wrong.â I sobbed. As they walked out, I faintly heard Owen reply: âItâs my fault. I should have found you earlier, or you wouldnât have suffered so much.â I could only guess at his last insult as the door closed behind them. I zoned out in front of the TV and poured myself some of Owenâs whisky. The past couple of days had been the worst of my life ever since I lost my parents. My body and mind had been through so much. I felt numb. I must have fallen asleep on the couch. The sudden loud jingle of my phone ringing woke me up. The bright midmorning sun was shining in through the large windows. Looks like I slept in late. Disoriented, I picked up my phone and saw it was Owen calling. I accepted the call and brought the phone to my ear. Before I could say a word, I heard Owenâs angry shouting: âHow dare you do this to Josie! Those guys you hired? You must pay for what you have done!â Chapter 6 - Choice Noah âWhat?! What guys? I just woke up, Owen. I have no idea what youâre talking about.â I replied to the angry voice on the phone. âMore lies! I canât believe you, Noah. You're despicable!â Owen shouted. He was so loud, I had to move the phone away from my ear. âOwen, please calm down. All I remember is you leaving with Josie last night. I fell asleep on the couch. What happened?â âJosie is in the hospital because of you. I demand that you come here right now and apologize to her!â He ended the call before I could reply. What was this about? Would my life ever go back to normal? I decided to find out what was going on. My fever was over. Although my head still hurt, the wound was healing rapidly. I took a refreshing shower and got into a pencil skirt and light blue blouse. I combed my hair and decided to wear it in natural loose waves today. After a quick breakfast, I slipped into my high heels and coat, and made my way to my car. It was a crisp sunny day. I arrived at the hospital. At least it wasn't me who needed to see the doctor this time. âOh, itâs our âold friendâ.â The nurse said jokingly. I smiled as she directed me to Josieâs room. As soon as I knocked on the door, Owen opened it with an enraged look on his face. âFinally! That took you long enough.â He whispered angrily. âJosie is sleeping.â He came out and gently closed the door behind him. We walked towards the chairs in the hallway. âI have no idea what happened, Owen.â I said honestly. âCan you please tell me what is going on? Some guys attacked her?â âAre you still pretending you weren't behind this? You are unbelievable.â He shook his head, then continued. âJosie was attacked by some hooligans this morning, on her way to work. She shouted out and fainted from fear. Thankfully, a police officer was nearby. He heard her scream. She has a heavy concussion from the fall. She'll have to stay here a few days to recover.â âWhat? That's horrible!â I replied in shock. Although I was angry with Josie, I wouldn't wish this on anyone. âStop your act now, Noah. Those guys were arrested. They told the police someone paid them to kidnap Josie, because she broke up a marriage.â No wonder he doubted me. But I couldnât believe the trust between us was so fragile. âWould you believe me if I swore to you it wasn't me?â I asked with a last glimmer of hope. His reply made it clear to me that there was no hope left for us: âNever again will I believe a single word you say, Noah.â I refused to apologize. I didn't have anything to do with this. If anyone needed to stand out and make an apology, it was them for what they had done to meďź On my way out, I contacted a friend who had lots of connections all over the city. I asked her to investigate the situation. I also called the office on my way home, to let them know I was still recovering from my fever and head wound. My boss was understanding. She told me to take as long as I needed. In the evening, Owen came home just as I was about to have dinner. âI didnât prepare your dinner. I guess you would have dinner with Josie?â I said plainly. I didnât know why he came back at this time, but I didnât care about it anymore. He ignored my words and said, âYou still donât want to apologize, right? You have two choices, Noah. Apologize and make amends with Josie, or divorce me and get out of this house!â âJosie is the one who betrayed us both. She lied to you, Owen. She stole my necklace. She is the one who should apologize!â I argued. Owen burst out in rage and slapped me in the face. I stared at him in disbelief. I was totally disappointed. Over the past few days he had hit me, pushed me, cheated on me. He had hurt me in every way. I made up my mind. âI choose divorce.â I said coldly. âGood. My lawyer will contact you in the next morning,âOwen said ruthlessly with a wicked smile, âOh, Iâve prepared another âsurpriseâ for you. Hope you will enjoy it!â | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=14837&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | redtgb.com | DCO | https://redtgb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=14837&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463312667_1475866000469340_6412121946724874326_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=eIOsGNZy1_wQ7kNvgGaTgxu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYAHn51qC1ZlmfaYqz1VNC8v_9wPbBjdq-ZszRaJuQY64g&oe=673063C1 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,526 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359266}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | In Debra's last life, she loved Juan so much, but everyone knew that the one he cherished was Shelia. After Debra was drained of her last bit of value by Juan, she tragically died on the operating table. Reborn in this life, Debra swears never to repeat the same mistakes, and she will make Juan regret what he has done! "Get the defibrillator! Increase the voltage!" "Doctor! The patient is experiencing massive bleeding, and the A-type blood from the blood bank was just urgently taken away." The intern nurse's hands were covered in blood, and she trembled. The operating room reeked of blood. She had never seen so much blood before. At that moment, a thought flashed through her mind. 'Who would suddenly take away A-type blood from the blood bank?' The woman lying on the bed was pale. Her lips were dry, and her eyes started to lose focus. "Juan..." "What?" "Juan Nichols..." The intern nurse made out the name murmured by Debra Frazier. Juan Nichols was the most influential businessman in Seamar City. The doctor was on the verge of collapse. He dialed the wrong number three times before finally getting it right. He quickly pleaded with the person on the other end of the phone, "Mr. Nichols, your wife is experiencing massive bleeding, but the blood from the blood bank has been taken away. Please, come and see her for the last time." But Juan's voice was filled with indifference. "She's still alive? Call me when she's dead." With that, he hung up the phone. All the light disappeared from Debra's eyes. 'Juan, do you hate me so much? Even at this point, you wouldn't come to see me.' The machine emitted a flat, cold beep, indicating the patient's vital signs had disappeared. Debra felt her soul leaving her body. Her withered, frail body collapsed weakly on the bed. Debra felt exhausted. At just twenty-seven, she died from postpartum hemorrhage in the hospital. In her lifetime, she loved Juan dearly. As the only daughter of the Frazier family, she should have enjoyed the best life. But to marry Juan, she sacrificed herself and her family. In the end, she met a tragic fate. Debra slowly closed her eyes. Given another chance, she would never make the same mistakes. ... "Madam, Mr. Nichols wants to take you to the auction. Which outfit would you like to wear?" Sophie asked. Debra gasped and opened her eyes. Everything in front of her was strikingly familiar. This place was Juan and her home. They had been married for a month, but Juan had rarely visited her. She remembered that Juan was attending a land auction, and due to the occasion, he had to bring his family along. But this was all five years ago. 'How could it be? ' she thought, deeply confused, 'Am I reborn?' "Mr. Nichols has never stayed overnight before. You should seize this opportunity." Sophieâs voice brought Debra back to reality. She picked out a white gown, hesitating. "How about this one, Madam?" Looking at it, Debra gave a self-deprecating smile. It was well known that Juan favored Shelia. In the past, she often dressed like Shelia to please Juan Miles. Shelia liked white dresses, so she followed suit, just to earn a little favor from Juan. For this auction, Juan didn't inform her of the change in companion and brought Shelia instead, making her look ridiculous in a white dress similar to Shelia's. The thought of the past made her laugh. "No, I'll wear that one," she said, picking up a red dress. Debra never liked plain clothes. Shelia was just a poor college student. Debra felt that she must have lost her mind to wear cheap clothes for a man. It only lowered her status and self-esteem. "But Mr. Nichols likes white dresses," Sophie said hesitantly. Debra simply ignored her hints. "I'll wear this one," she said. "Throw away all those white dresses. I don't like them." Sophie sighed and complied. Debra looked at herself in the mirror, still vibrant and beautiful. But in a few years, she would be worn down by Juan's torment. Before that happened, she would end it all. In the evening, Debra appeared in a burgundy dress that accentuated her curves. Her delicate makeup, curls, and a mole under her eye made her mesmerizing. She looked like a painting, untouchable. Not far away, a man in a white shirt and black leather combat boots saw her. With a cigarette dangling from his mouth, Marion Houston asked, "Who is she?" "You don't know her? She's Debra, the daughter of the Frazier family and Juan's wife," said his friend, Randy Osborne. "I just saw Juan entering with another woman. Maybe we'll witness a showdown between the mistress and the wife. It will be fun." Marion made no comments. Randy clicked his tongue. "Juan's taste is just terrible, preferring a skinny woman to his beautiful woman. Don't you think?" Randy turned around, but Marion was nowhere to be seen. "Damn it!" he cursed, quickly catching up with Marion. Shelia, in a white dress, held Juan's arm timidly. "I've never been to such an event before. Maybe I should go back." "You'll get used to it. You'll be attending these events frequently in the future," Juan said. Shelia nodded. Juan was about to enter with Shelia when Joe spoke up. "Sir, won't we wait for Mrs. Nichols?" Juan frowned. "Didn't I ask you to tell her not to come today?" Joe glanced at Shelia, and she quickly said, "It's not Joe's fault. I told him not to inform Debra. With my status, I'm afraid of gossip, so I thought it would be better for Debra to accompany you in." Shelia lowered her head like a scared hare. Juan rubbed his temples. He didn't want Debra to show up at all. "Mr. Nichols," Shelia murmured, biting her lip. "It's alright." Juan patted Shelia's head and said to Joe, "Go intercept her and send her away." In the crowd, there were murmurs of surprise. Joe looked over and was also shocked. "I'm afraid it's too late." | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13914&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/462483624_1046414663443486_2784424457317863530_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=V3D1U-h8UowQ7kNvgFM7V9I&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYDpa3mwLZTfom3YGIXPc5Zu3NHaIFvUlq_XgkHmhGmwwQ&oe=67307E7B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,531 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359266}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | In Debra's last life, she loved Juan so much, but everyone knew that the one he cherished was Shelia. After Debra was drained of her last bit of value by Juan, she tragically died on the operating table. Reborn in this life, Debra swears never to repeat the same mistakes, and she will make Juan regret what he has done! "Get the defibrillator! Increase the voltage!" "Doctor! The patient is experiencing massive bleeding, and the A-type blood from the blood bank was just urgently taken away." The intern nurse's hands were covered in blood, and she trembled. The operating room reeked of blood. She had never seen so much blood before. At that moment, a thought flashed through her mind. 'Who would suddenly take away A-type blood from the blood bank?' The woman lying on the bed was pale. Her lips were dry, and her eyes started to lose focus. "Juan..." "What?" "Juan Nichols..." The intern nurse made out the name murmured by Debra Frazier. Juan Nichols was the most influential businessman in Seamar City. The doctor was on the verge of collapse. He dialed the wrong number three times before finally getting it right. He quickly pleaded with the person on the other end of the phone, "Mr. Nichols, your wife is experiencing massive bleeding, but the blood from the blood bank has been taken away. Please, come and see her for the last time." But Juan's voice was filled with indifference. "She's still alive? Call me when she's dead." With that, he hung up the phone. All the light disappeared from Debra's eyes. 'Juan, do you hate me so much? Even at this point, you wouldn't come to see me.' The machine emitted a flat, cold beep, indicating the patient's vital signs had disappeared. Debra felt her soul leaving her body. Her withered, frail body collapsed weakly on the bed. Debra felt exhausted. At just twenty-seven, she died from postpartum hemorrhage in the hospital. In her lifetime, she loved Juan dearly. As the only daughter of the Frazier family, she should have enjoyed the best life. But to marry Juan, she sacrificed herself and her family. In the end, she met a tragic fate. Debra slowly closed her eyes. Given another chance, she would never make the same mistakes. ... "Madam, Mr. Nichols wants to take you to the auction. Which outfit would you like to wear?" Sophie asked. Debra gasped and opened her eyes. Everything in front of her was strikingly familiar. This place was Juan and her home. They had been married for a month, but Juan had rarely visited her. She remembered that Juan was attending a land auction, and due to the occasion, he had to bring his family along. But this was all five years ago. 'How could it be? ' she thought, deeply confused, 'Am I reborn?' "Mr. Nichols has never stayed overnight before. You should seize this opportunity." Sophieâs voice brought Debra back to reality. She picked out a white gown, hesitating. "How about this one, Madam?" Looking at it, Debra gave a self-deprecating smile. It was well known that Juan favored Shelia. In the past, she often dressed like Shelia to please Juan Miles. Shelia liked white dresses, so she followed suit, just to earn a little favor from Juan. For this auction, Juan didn't inform her of the change in companion and brought Shelia instead, making her look ridiculous in a white dress similar to Shelia's. The thought of the past made her laugh. "No, I'll wear that one," she said, picking up a red dress. Debra never liked plain clothes. Shelia was just a poor college student. Debra felt that she must have lost her mind to wear cheap clothes for a man. It only lowered her status and self-esteem. "But Mr. Nichols likes white dresses," Sophie said hesitantly. Debra simply ignored her hints. "I'll wear this one," she said. "Throw away all those white dresses. I don't like them." Sophie sighed and complied. Debra looked at herself in the mirror, still vibrant and beautiful. But in a few years, she would be worn down by Juan's torment. Before that happened, she would end it all. In the evening, Debra appeared in a burgundy dress that accentuated her curves. Her delicate makeup, curls, and a mole under her eye made her mesmerizing. She looked like a painting, untouchable. Not far away, a man in a white shirt and black leather combat boots saw her. With a cigarette dangling from his mouth, Marion Houston asked, "Who is she?" "You don't know her? She's Debra, the daughter of the Frazier family and Juan's wife," said his friend, Randy Osborne. "I just saw Juan entering with another woman. Maybe we'll witness a showdown between the mistress and the wife. It will be fun." Marion made no comments. Randy clicked his tongue. "Juan's taste is just terrible, preferring a skinny woman to his beautiful woman. Don't you think?" Randy turned around, but Marion was nowhere to be seen. "Damn it!" he cursed, quickly catching up with Marion. Shelia, in a white dress, held Juan's arm timidly. "I've never been to such an event before. Maybe I should go back." "You'll get used to it. You'll be attending these events frequently in the future," Juan said. Shelia nodded. Juan was about to enter with Shelia when Joe spoke up. "Sir, won't we wait for Mrs. Nichols?" Juan frowned. "Didn't I ask you to tell her not to come today?" Joe glanced at Shelia, and she quickly said, "It's not Joe's fault. I told him not to inform Debra. With my status, I'm afraid of gossip, so I thought it would be better for Debra to accompany you in." Shelia lowered her head like a scared hare. Juan rubbed his temples. He didn't want Debra to show up at all. "Mr. Nichols," Shelia murmured, biting her lip. "It's alright." Juan patted Shelia's head and said to Joe, "Go intercept her and send her away." In the crowd, there were murmurs of surprise. Joe looked over and was also shocked. "I'm afraid it's too late." | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13914&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/462483624_1046414663443486_2784424457317863530_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=V3D1U-h8UowQ7kNvgFM7V9I&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYDpa3mwLZTfom3YGIXPc5Zu3NHaIFvUlq_XgkHmhGmwwQ&oe=67307E7B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,533 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359269}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461342866_403665495877678_8039372569247806790_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=V-QVVgKxP20Q7kNvgE1DCoX&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYAwzsLePoBzVESaj2X3IqlpEKAh040MdqQ_EfQb68RzWw&oe=67308835 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,537 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359269}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461342866_403665495877678_8039372569247806790_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=V-QVVgKxP20Q7kNvgE1DCoX&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYAwzsLePoBzVESaj2X3IqlpEKAh040MdqQ_EfQb68RzWw&oe=67308835 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,538 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359269}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461342866_403665495877678_8039372569247806790_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=V-QVVgKxP20Q7kNvgE1DCoX&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYAwzsLePoBzVESaj2X3IqlpEKAh040MdqQ_EfQb68RzWw&oe=67308835 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,558 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
Continuer la lecture | "ÂŤ Si tu acceptes d'ĂŞtre ma maĂŽtresse pendant cinq ans, je peux garantir la sĂťretĂŠ de ton père. Âť Se faisant trahir par son ex-petit ami, Rena ne s'attend pas Ă ce qu'il lui demande de devenir sa maĂŽtresse. === === === Chapitre 1 Un gros bonnet Dans une chambre d'hĂ´tel faiblement ĂŠclairĂŠe, Rena Gordon embrassait passionnĂŠment un bel inconnu. Plus tĂ´t dans la soirĂŠe, l'ex-petit ami de Rena, Harold Moore, avait annoncĂŠ ses fiançailles avec une autre femme. Rena avait ĂŠtĂŠ tellement bouleversĂŠe qu'elle s'ĂŠtait retrouvĂŠe, dâune marnière ou dâune autre, dans la chambre dâun inconnu. Ă prĂŠsent qu'Harold ĂŠtait sur le point d'ĂŠpouser une fille riche sans tenir compte de ses quatre annĂŠes de relation avec Rena, celle-ci pouvait se permettre de se faire plaisir, n'est-ce pas ? Au moment oĂš l'homme lui a retirĂŠ ses vĂŞtements, Rena s'est appuyĂŠe sur l'ĂŠpaule de l'homme et s'est laissĂŠe aller en murmurant : ÂŤ Harold ! Âť L'homme s'est brusquement arrĂŞtĂŠ, quelques secondes plus tard, les lumières se sont allumĂŠes. La lumière vive a provoquĂŠ un plissement des yeux de Rena. Mais lorsque ses yeux se sont enfin adaptĂŠs Ă la lumière, elle a vu clairement le visage de l'homme. C'ĂŠtait Waylen Fowler, l'avocat le plus recherchĂŠ du pays. Il ĂŠtait très cĂŠlèbre dans les milieux juridiques, et il ĂŠtait une ĂŠlite avec d'innombrables propriĂŠtĂŠs. Mais le plus important, Waylen Fowler ĂŠtait le futur beau-frère d'Harold. Rena a dĂŠgrisĂŠ instantanĂŠment. AdossĂŠ au mur, Waylen lui a demandĂŠ avec un lĂŠger sourire : ÂŤ Ă quoi pensais-tu tout Ă l'heure ? Voulais-tu le faire pour rendre Harold jaloux ? Âť Manifestement, Waylen venait aussi de la reconnaĂŽtre. Rena ne pouvait pas faire semblant de ne pas connaĂŽtre cet homme. Waylen ĂŠtait cĂŠlèbre, après tout. Rena ne l'avait pas reconnu tout Ă l'heure simplement Ă cause de l'alcool. Comme Rena savait qu'elle ne pouvait pas se permettre d'offenser un tel personnage, elle a baissĂŠ la tĂŞte et a prĂŠsentĂŠ ses excuses docilement. ÂŤ Je suis dĂŠsolĂŠe, M. Fowler. Je ne savais pas ce que je faisais. Âť Heureusement que M. Fowler ne lui a pas compliquĂŠ les choses. Après la conversation, Waylen s'est redressĂŠ et lui a lancĂŠ un manteau. ÂŤ Mets-le, je te ramène. Âť Rena l'a remerciĂŠ doucement. Dans la Bentley de Waylen, bien qu'aucun des deux n'ait parlĂŠ pendant tout le trajet, Rena jetait de temps en temps un coup d'Ĺil Ă l'homme. L'homme avait un visage anguleux et une mâchoire parfaite. Bien que Rena ne connaisse pas la marque de la chemise qu'il portait, elle pouvait constater qu'elle ĂŠtait très chère. Après quelques minutes de silence, Waylen a arrĂŞtĂŠ la voiture devant leur destination. Il a tournĂŠ lĂŠgèrement la tĂŞte et a regardĂŠ les jambes fines et droites de la jeune femme pendant quelques secondes avant de lui tendre sa carte de visite. Rena comprenait ce que cela signifiait. Elle ĂŠtait surprise que Waylen veuille encore garder le contact avec elle après avoir dĂŠcouvert son identitĂŠ. MalgrĂŠ le fait qu'il soit charmant, Rena a hĂŠsitĂŠ. C'ĂŠtait une mauvaise idĂŠe de s'embrouiller avec un gros bonnet comme lui, alors elle a dit : ÂŤ M. Fowler, nous ferions mieux de ne pas rester en contact. Âť Waylen a haussĂŠ les ĂŠpaules d'un air indiffĂŠrent. Rena ĂŠtait vraiment belle, mais Waylen ne la forcerait pas si elle n'ĂŠtait pas intĂŠressĂŠe. Il a donc rangĂŠ sa carte de visite dans sa poche et a dit : ÂŤ Le conservatisme te va bien. Âť Rena ĂŠtait un peu gĂŞnĂŠe, mais avant qu'elle ne puisse rĂŠpondre, Waylen est sorti de la voiture et lui a ouvert la porte comme un gentleman. Dès que Rena est descendue, la voiture s'est ĂŠloignĂŠe lentement. Une brise fraĂŽche a soufflĂŠ sur elle, la faisant frissonner. C'est alors qu'elle s'est rendu compte qu'elle avait oubliĂŠ de lui rendre le manteau. Pendant que Rena hĂŠsitait Ă essayer de le rattraper ou pas, son tĂŠlĂŠphone s'est mis Ă sonner. En jetant un coup d'Ĺil Ă l'afficheur, elle a vu que c'ĂŠtait sa belle-mère Eloise qui l'appelait. La voix anxieuse de celle-ci a retenti Ă l'autre bout du fil dès qu'elle a dĂŠcrochĂŠ : ÂŤ Rena, reviens Ă la maison tout de suite ! Il s'est passĂŠ quelque chose de grave ! Âť Rena a tentĂŠ de lui poser des questions, mais Eloise n'a pas rĂŠussi Ă lui expliquer clairement au tĂŠlĂŠphone et s'est contentĂŠe de la supplier de rentrer Ă la maison le plus vite possible. Chapitre 2 Pas un homme ordinaire Dès que Rena est entrĂŠe dans la maison, elle a trouvĂŠ Eloise assise dans le canapĂŠ, hĂŠbĂŠtĂŠe. Les yeux rouges d'Eloise donnaient l'impression d'avoir pleurĂŠ. Rena a regardĂŠ autour d'elle et a demandĂŠ avec anxiĂŠtĂŠ : ÂŤ Qu'est-ce qui s'est passĂŠ, Eloise ? OĂš est papa ? Âť Eloise ĂŠtait la deuxième femme du père de Rena. La femme n'a pas pu s'empĂŞcher de s'effondrer Ă l'ĂŠvocation de son mari. ÂŤ Harold est tellement cruel ! Quand le Groupe Moore ĂŠtait en difficultĂŠ il y a quelques annĂŠes, tu ne l'as jamais abandonnĂŠ. Maintenant que leur entreprise a retrouvĂŠ son ĂŠquilibre, non seulement il t'a larguĂŠe, mais aussi il a essayĂŠ d'envoyer ton père en prison ! Ton père est maintenant au centre de dĂŠtention Ă cause de ce garçon ingrat ! Âť Après une courte pause, Rena a dit Ă voix basse : ÂŤ Laisse-moi parler Ă Harold. Âť MĂŞme si Rena et Harold avaient rompu, ils ĂŠtaient ensemble depuis longtemps. Rena pensait qu'Harold ne serait pas aussi impitoyable. Elle a donc composĂŠ le numĂŠro de tĂŠlĂŠphone d'Harold. Rapidement, l'appel a ĂŠtĂŠ connectĂŠ. Rena a suppliĂŠ : ÂŤ Harold, nous nous sommes dĂŠjĂ sĂŠparĂŠs. S'il te plaĂŽt, ne dĂŠverse pas ta colère sur mon père. Âť Mais Harold s'est contentĂŠ de ricaner froidement. ÂŤ Quelqu'un doit ĂŞtre tenu pour responsable des pertes. Âť Avant que Rena ne puisse demander de la pitiĂŠ, Harold a repris la parole. ÂŤ Il y a en fait une autre façon de rĂŠgler ceci... Si tu acceptes d'ĂŞtre ma maĂŽtresse pendant cinq ans, je laisserai ton père partir. Âť Rena a tremblĂŠ de colère. ÂŤ Harold, tu me dĂŠgoĂťtes ! Âť Harold a rĂŠpondu d'un ton enjouĂŠ : ÂŤ Tu as toujours su quel genre de personne je suis, n'est-ce pas ? Âť Rena a serrĂŠ les dents et a crachĂŠ : ÂŤ Je refuse ! Pas question ! Âť Harold s'en est moquĂŠ. ÂŤ Alors tu ferais mieux d'engager un bon avocat pour ton père. Après tout, une telle somme d'argent le mettra derrière les barreaux pour au moins une dĂŠcennie. Âť Rena a rĂŠpliquĂŠ : ÂŤ J'engagerai le meilleur avocat du pays ! Âť ÂŤ Veux-tu dire Waylen ? Âť, a demandĂŠ Harold avec un petit rire suffisant. ÂŤ As-tu oubliĂŠ que c'est mon futur beau-frère ? Penses-tu qu'il t'aidera vraiment pour le procès ? Âť Rena a serrĂŠ les poings si fort que ses jointures sont devenues blanches. Elle n'a trouvĂŠ aucun mot pour rĂŠfuter. Harold a souri et a ajoutĂŠ : ÂŤ Rena, j'attendrai que tu me supplies de te reprendre ! Âť Rena a raccrochĂŠ brusquement le tĂŠlĂŠphone, trop furieuse pour continuer Ă ĂŠcouter les propos de cet homme. Ayant entendu leur conversation, Eloise a maugrĂŠĂŠ : ÂŤ Ne t'inquiète pas, Rena. Nous ne le laisserons jamais te faire du mal ! Âť Des larmes de colère ont coulĂŠ sur les joues d'Eloise. ÂŤ Mais Harold a raison. M. Fowler est son futur beau-frère. Pourquoi nous aiderait-il ? Rena, il doit y avoir une solution... Âť Rena a baissĂŠ la tĂŞte. Au bout d'un moment, elle a dit Ă voix basse : ÂŤ J'ai rencontrĂŠ M. Fowler une fois. Je vais tenter de le convaincre. Âť Eloise l'a regardĂŠe avec incrĂŠdulitĂŠ. C'ĂŠtait une femme particulièrement perspicace. Alors seulement, Eloise a remarquĂŠ que le manteau de l'homme drapĂŠ autour des ĂŠpaules de Rena, elle a devinĂŠ ce qui s'ĂŠtait passĂŠ. Mais elle ĂŠtait rĂŠticente Ă interroger Rena Ă ce sujet. Il ĂŠtait difficile pour Rena de retrouver Waylen. Dans le hall du cabinet d'avocats Sterling, la rĂŠceptionniste a poliment rejetĂŠ la demande de Rena. ÂŤ J'ai bien peur de ne pas pouvoir vous laisser monter sans rendez-vous, madame. Âť Rena s'est pincĂŠ les lèvres, regrettant de ne pas avoir pris la carte de visite de l'homme hier soir. ÂŤ Si je prends rendez-vous maintenant, quand pourrai-je le voir ? Âť, a-t-elle demandĂŠ anxieusement. La rĂŠceptionniste a vĂŠrifiĂŠ et a rĂŠpondu : ÂŤ Dans un demi-mois. Âť Le cĹur de Rena s'est effondrĂŠ. Ă ce moment-lĂ , les portes de l'ascenseur se sont ouvertes et un homme et une femme en sont sortis. L'homme n'ĂŠtait autre que Waylen ! Il portait un costume noir sur mesure, ressemblant au top premier de la sociĂŠtĂŠ. En revanche, Rena ne connaissait pas la femme. Elle avait l'air d'avoir une trentaine d'annĂŠes et ĂŠtait très belle. Les yeux de Waylen ont croisĂŠ ceux de Rena, mais il a fait comme s'il ne la connaissait pas et a raccompagnĂŠ la cliente jusqu'Ă la porte. Waylen a serrĂŠ la main de la femme et lui a dit au revoir. La femme a dit avec coquetterie : ÂŤ Si vous n'aviez pas ĂŠtĂŠ lĂ , M. Fowler, je n'aurais pas obtenu un centime de mon ex-mari ! Vous n'imaginez pas Ă quel point il a ĂŠtĂŠ avare avec moi après avoir eu sa maĂŽtresse... Âť Waylen a esquissĂŠ un lĂŠger sourire. ÂŤ Ăa fait partie du boulot. Âť La femme l'a ensuite dĂŠvisagĂŠ et lui a demandĂŠ : ÂŤ M. Fowler, aimeriez-vous prendre un cafĂŠ avec moi ? Âť Rena a regardĂŠ la belle femme et s'est dit qu'aucun homme ordinaire ne pourrait la repousser. Mais Waylen a fait exception. Il a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil Ă sa montre et a poliment refusĂŠ. ÂŤ Je crains d'avoir un rendez-vous plus tard. Âť La femme savait que Waylen ne s'intĂŠressait pas Ă elle, mais a eu la politesse de ne pas le dire franchement. Après lui avoir dit au revoir, la femme est montĂŠe dans sa voiture et s'en est allĂŠe. Une fois la femme partie, Waylen s'est rendu directement Ă la rĂŠception et a demandĂŠ Ă Rena : ÂŤ As-tu changĂŠ d'avis ? Âť Chapitre 3 Quel hypocrite ! Visiblement, Rena s'est raidie. D'une manière maladroite, elle a brandi un sac en papier et a expliquĂŠ : ÂŤ Je suis venue te rendre ton manteau. Âť Waylen a acquiescĂŠ et a pris le sac. ÂŤ Merci. Âť Sans rien ajouter, il s'est dirigĂŠ vers l'ascenseur. Rena est sortie de sa transe et s'est dĂŠpĂŞchĂŠe de le rattraper. ÂŤ M. Fowler, il y a quelque chose que je... Âť Les portes de l'ascenseur se sont ouvertes dès que Waylen a appuyĂŠ sur le bouton. Sans hĂŠsiter, Rena l'a suivi Ă l'intĂŠrieur. Voyant cela, Waylen l'a regardĂŠe d'un Ĺil inquisiteur. Ensuite, il a lissĂŠ sa chemise et a dit avec indiffĂŠrence : ÂŤ Je ne m'occuperai pas de ton affaire. Âť Rena s'est tue. On dirait que Waylen ĂŠtait dĂŠjĂ au courant de l'affaire concernant son père ! Rena a baissĂŠ la tĂŞte et a demandĂŠ doucement : ÂŤ Harold t'a-t-il demandĂŠ de ne pas t'occuper de mon affaire ? Âť Waylen l'a regardĂŠe dans le miroir et a souri. ÂŤ Je n'aime pas mĂŠlanger mes affaires privĂŠes avec le travail. Âť Rena a compris ce qu'il voulait dire. Si elle venait le voir pour quelque chose en rapport avec le travail, elle pouvait tout simplement l'oublier. Les oreilles de Rena ont rougi sous l'effet de l'embarras. Mais Waylen ne l'a pas forcĂŠe Ă faire quoi que ce soit. L'ascenseur s'est finalement arrĂŞtĂŠ au vingt-huitième ĂŠtage. La secrĂŠtaire de Waylen attendait Ă la porte de l'ascenseur. Elle ĂŠtait surprise de voir Rena avec lui, mais comme elle travaillait depuis des annĂŠes pour cet homme, elle savait qu'il ne fallait rien dire. ÂŤ M. Fowler, votre client est arrivĂŠ Âť, a-t-elle dit poliment. Waylen a lancĂŠ le sac en papier Ă sa secrĂŠtaire et a dit : ÂŤ Envoie-le au pressing. Âť La secrĂŠtaire a acquiescĂŠ et est partie. Waylen a baissĂŠ la tĂŞte et s'est mis Ă manipuler son tĂŠlĂŠphone. Sans lever les yeux, il a dit Ă Rena : ÂŤ Trouve un autre avocat. Âť Ensuite, Waylen a quittĂŠ l'ascenseur juste avant que les portes ne se referment. Rena a serrĂŠ les dents. Quel hypocrite ! Ă la maison, Eloise ĂŠtait de plus en plus anxieuse. Rena ĂŠtait très stressĂŠe et a dĂŠcidĂŠ de rencontrer sa camarade de classe, Vera Byrd. Vera s'ĂŠtait mariĂŠe avec un homme riche de Duefron juste après avoir obtenu son diplĂ´me. Ce mari disposait d'un large ĂŠventail de contacts. Rena, qui n'avait nulle part oĂš aller, a demandĂŠ de l'aide Ă Vera. Elles se sont retrouvĂŠes dans un cafĂŠ et Rena n'a pas perdu de temps pour raconter Ă son amie tout ce qui s'ĂŠtait passĂŠ. Vera a maudit Harold avec vĂŠhĂŠmence. Après avoir dĂŠversĂŠ sa colère, elle a rĂŠflĂŠchi un moment et a demandĂŠ : ÂŤ As-tu vraiment failli passer un moment avec Waylen ? Âť Rena a rougi et a remuĂŠ son cafĂŠ avec raideur. Vera a baissĂŠ le ton et l'a taquinĂŠe : ÂŤ Rena, tu es vraiment quelqu'un d'exceptionnel ! MĂŞme les stars n'arrivent pas Ă attirer l'attention de Waylen. Il y a rarement des ragots sur lui parce qu'il est tellement "chaste". Âť Rena a souri avec amertume et a changĂŠ de sujet. ÂŤ Quoi qu'il en soit, je n'ai pas eu d'autre choix que de me tourner vers toi, Vera. Âť Waylen dĂŠtenait un grand pouvoir et un grand prestige dans les hautes sphères de la sociĂŠtĂŠ. Vera pourrait facilement s'attirer les ennuis si elle osait aider Rena. Mais Vera ĂŠtait l'amie loyale de Rena. Grâce Ă ses relations, elle a rapidement trouvĂŠ l'emploi du temps de Waylen. Le samedi, Waylen avait rendez-vous avec un joueur de golf Ă un club rural Ă trois heures de l'après-midi. Rena s'y est rendue avec Vera et son mari Ă l'heure convenue. Contre toute attente, Harold ĂŠtait ĂŠgalement prĂŠsent. Rena ĂŠtait stupĂŠfaite de la tournure que prenaient les ĂŠvĂŠnements. Vera a pincĂŠ le bras de son mari et s'est ĂŠcriĂŠe : ÂŤ Pourquoi ne nous as-tu pas dit qu'Harold serait aussi lĂ ? Comment Rena peut-elle demander de l'aide Ă Waylen maintenant ? Âť Le mari de Vera a prĂŠsentĂŠ ses excuses. ÂŤ Je suis dĂŠsolĂŠ, Rena ! Je ne savais pas, je le jure ! Âť Avant que Rena ne puisse reculer, Waylen les a aperçus. Waylen, riche et beau, ĂŠtait habillĂŠ d'une tenue de golf blanche. Il avait une grande taille qui le distinguait de tous les autres. Comme au cabinet d'avocats, Waylen a fait semblant de ne pas reconnaĂŽtre Rena et n'a saluĂŠ que le mari de Vera. Celui-ci, flattĂŠ, lui a rendu son sourire. Ensuite, Waylen a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil Ă Rena. Rena avait une peau lisse et souple. Elle avait dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠment enfilĂŠ des vĂŞtements qui mettaient en valeur son physique. Le tee-shirt blanc moulant lui donnait un air ĂŠnergique, tandis que le short gris clair faisait ressortir ses longues jambes parfaites. Ses cheveux bruns, longs et ondulĂŠs, ĂŠtaient attachĂŠs en chignon, ce qui renforçait son charme. Waylen a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil Ă Rena, puis a demandĂŠ avec dĂŠsinvolture : ÂŤ Et vous ĂŞtes... ? Âť Chapitre 4 Concentrez-vous, Mme Gordon ! Waylen a fait comme s'il ne connaissait pas Rena. Le mari de Vera ĂŠtait plutĂ´t avisĂŠ et n'a pas dĂŠvoilĂŠ son mensonge. ÂŤ M. Fowler, voici une camarade de classe de Vera, Mme Rena Gordon. Elle est professeur de piano. Âť Waylen a souri d'un air entendu. ÂŤ EnchantĂŠ, Mme Gordon ! Âť En disant, il a tendu la main, comme un vrai gentleman. Autour d'eux, les autres hommes d'ĂŠlite les regardaient avec curiositĂŠ. Constatant que la jolie Rena ĂŠtait lĂ pour Waylen, ils ĂŠtaient très jaloux. Quelqu'un a mĂŞme commentĂŠ : ÂŤ M. Fowler, tu as de la chance. Âť Rena ĂŠtait un peu inexpĂŠrimentĂŠe et n'a jamais ĂŠtĂŠ confrontĂŠe Ă cette situation. Elle ne pouvait s'empĂŞcher de rougir et de tendre timidement sa petite main. La grande main de Waylen a serrĂŠ la sienne. Ensuite, Waylen l'a lâchĂŠe et lui a dit avec un sourire charmeur : ÂŤ Mme Gordon, aimeriez-vous jouer une partie de golf avec moi ? Âť Sans attendre de rĂŠponse, Waylen s'est retournĂŠ et a commencĂŠ Ă marcher vers le terrain, comme s'il n'allait pas la laisser refuser. Rena n'a pas eu d'autre choix que de le suivre. Derrière Rena, on pouvait voir Harold tenir le club et les regarder avec un visage sombre. Waylen ĂŠtait de bonne humeur aujourd'hui. Raison pour laquelle il n'ĂŠtait pas du tout impatient, mĂŞme si Rena disait qu'elle ne savait pas jouer au golf. ÂŤ Ne t'en fais pas. je t'apprendrai ! Âť Dès que Waylen a dit cela, tout le monde a compris ce qu'il voulait vraiment, mĂŞme la naĂŻve Rena. Waylen essayait dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠment de se rapprocher d'elle, ce qui signifiait qu'il n'aimait pas Harold et qu'il voulait le contrarier ! Rena portait un short qui dĂŠvoilait ses longues jambes. Au fur et Ă mesure qu'il se rapprochait d'elle, elle pouvait sentir la chaleur qui ĂŠmanait du corps de Waylen. Rena n'a pas pu s'empĂŞcher de rougir. ÂŤ Concentrez-vous, Mme Gordon ! Âť, lui a chuchotĂŠ Waylen Ă l'oreille. Rena s'est figĂŠe. Waylen lui a tenu les mains, qui tenaient le club. Il lui a ensuite guidĂŠ les bras pour qu'elle fasse un swing parfait. Dès que la balle a ĂŠtĂŠ envoyĂŠe au loin, les gens autour d'eux ont applaudi Ă tout rompre. Tout le monde ĂŠtait impatient de flatter Waylen. ÂŤ M. Fowler et Mme Gordon travaillent bien ensemble ! Âť ÂŤ Oui, M. Fowler lui a très bien enseignĂŠ. Âť ÂŤ Encore un coup, M. Fowler ! Âť Waylen ĂŠtait habituĂŠ Ă entendre les gens lui parler ainsi. Mais ce n'ĂŠtait pas le cas pour Rena. Elle a rougi furieusement. Waylen lui a soufflĂŠ Ă l'oreille. ÂŤ Mme Gordon, pouvons-nous frapper une autre balle ? Âť Waylen ĂŠtait très douĂŠ pour le golf. Au deuxième coup, il a rĂŠussi Ă faire un trou d'un coup. Ceux qui les entouraient ont Ă nouveau applaudi Ă tout rompre. Waylen les a remerciĂŠs d'un signe de la main. L'homme avait l'air si beau et si ĂŠnergique que le cĹur de Rena s'est mis Ă battre la chamade. Ce jour-lĂ , elle ĂŠtait venue lĂ pour essayer de convaincre Waylen, mais en fin de compte, la situation s'ĂŠtait inversĂŠe. Rena savait que si Waylen voulait une femme, la plupart d'entre elles ne rĂŠsisteraient pas Ă son charme. Seulement qu'un homme de son rang ne s'abaisserait pas facilement. Toujours tenant Rena par derrière, Waylen l'a aidĂŠe Ă frapper d'autres coups. Pendant la pause, Rena s'est assise Ă cĂ´tĂŠ de Waylen. Celui-ci n'ĂŠtait pas très bavard. La plupart du temps, il parlait du business avec d'autres personnes, et parfois d'affaires juridiques, mais il ne parlait presque pas avec elle. Se mordant la lèvre, Rena a rĂŠflĂŠchi Ă un moyen de s'attirer ses faveurs. Rena a tendu Ă Waylen une bouteille de boisson et une serviette neuve. Elle s'occupait de lui comme une servante loyale. Naturellement, Waylen a acceptĂŠ. Vera a cru que c'ĂŠtait l'occasion ou jamais. Elle a conduit Rena dans les toilettes pour avoir une discussion entre filles. ÂŤ Je ne m'attendais pas Ă ce que M. Fowler soit aussi un dragueur ! Je l'ai dĂŠjĂ vu plusieurs fois Ă des soirĂŠes, et il a toujours ĂŠtĂŠ très sĂŠrieux. Âť Vera ne voulait pas que Rena tombe pour de vrai amoureuse de Waylen, car elle doutait qu'il l'ĂŠpouse. Harold ĂŠtait le futur beau-frère de Waylen, après tout. Rena l'a rassurĂŠe doucement : ÂŤ Je veux juste le supplier pour qu'il m'aide. Je ne suis pas si naĂŻve, Vera. Âť Vera a soupirĂŠ de soulagement. Au moment oĂš elles s'apprĂŞtaient Ă quitter les toilettes, la porte a ĂŠtĂŠ soudainement ouverte d'un coup de pied. Harold est entrĂŠ Ă grands pas. Sans laisser le temps aux filles de rĂŠagir, il a brusquement poussĂŠ Rena contre le mur. Vera a entrepris de l'ĂŠloigner de son amie avec anxiĂŠtĂŠ. ÂŤ Harold, qu'est-ce que tu fais ? Âť Toutefois, Harold ĂŠtait beaucoup plus fort qu'elle. Sans grand effort, il a poussĂŠ Vera hors des toilettes. La seconde d'après, la porte a ĂŠtĂŠ verrouillĂŠe de l'intĂŠrieur. Vera a frappĂŠ la porte avec force et a grondĂŠ : ÂŤ Harold ! Ouvre la porte ! Ne t'avise pas de lui faire du mal ! Âť Harold s'en moquait ĂŠperdument. Chapitre 5 Une relation de 4 ans Rena, une femme de petite taille, ne faisait pas le poids face Ă Harold, mĂŞme si elle se dĂŠbattait avec acharnement. Harold a ricanĂŠ. ÂŤ Tu es venu pour Waylen, câest ça ? Qu'est-ce qui te fait croire que tu es capable d'y parvenir ? Tout le monde sait qu'il ne se laisse pas facilement entraĂŽner par les femmes. Âť Rena a serrĂŠ les dents et a maudit intĂŠrieurement l'homme en face d'elle. Elle a baissĂŠ les yeux et a dit froidement : ÂŤ Ce ne sont pas tes affaires. Âť Harold l'a regardĂŠe de haut et a ricanĂŠ d'un air incrĂŠdule. ÂŤ Tu as dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠment abordĂŠ Waylen devant moi. Crois-tu que je m'en soucie ? Âť Cet homme dĂŠgoĂťtait tellement Rena. Elle l'a regardĂŠ avec un dĂŠdain non masquĂŠ et a crachĂŠ : ÂŤ Harold, si tu n'avais pas piĂŠgĂŠ mon père, je ne me serais pas du tout intĂŠressĂŠe Ă la personne que tu vais ĂŠpouser ! Ne te flatte pas ! Âť Harold l'a fixĂŠe sans mot dire. Rena s'est forcĂŠe Ă le regarder dans les yeux. Elle ne voulait pas se montrer faible devant lui. Après un long moment, Harold a gloussĂŠ avec moquerie. ÂŤ Rena, tu accepteras ma proposition d'une manière ou d'une autre ! Tu n'as qu'Ă attendre ! Âť Ensuite, il a ouvert la porte et est parti en claquant la porte derrière lui. AussitĂ´t qu'Harold est parti, Rena a eu les jambes lourdes et a appuyĂŠ la tĂŞte contre le mur pour se soutenir, les larmes coulant lentement le long de ses joues. Quel homme cruel ! Pendant les quatre dernières annĂŠes, Rena avait fait beaucoup pour Harold, mais il n'avait fait que la trahir ! Elle venait seulement de se rendre compte qu'Harold jouait avec ses sentiments depuis le dĂŠbut. Il n'avait jamais voulu l'ĂŠpouser ! En pensant Ă cela, Rena a pleurĂŠ amèrement. ÂŤ Rena ? Âť La voix de Vera l'a ramenĂŠe Ă la raison. Rena s'est essuyĂŠ les larmes et a levĂŠ les yeux. Elle s'est figĂŠe sur place devant le spectacle qui s'offrait Ă elle. Sur le seuil de la porte se tenaient non seulement Vera et son mari, mais aussi Waylen. Celui-ci s'ĂŠtait changĂŠ et portait maintenant une chemise bleu foncĂŠ et un pantalon de costume gris. Vera ĂŠtait inquiète pour Rena, mais elle s'est abstenue de parler d'Harold. Elle a vite trouvĂŠ une solution et a dit : ÂŤ Il s'est mis Ă pleuvoir tout d'un coup, alors jouons au golf une autre fois, d'accord ? Âť Son mari a compris et a rĂŠpondu : ÂŤ Bonne idĂŠe ! Jouons au golf une autre fois. M. Fowler, pouvez-vous raccompagner Rena ? Vera et moi avons quelque chose Ă faire juste après. Âť Waylen a jetĂŠ un bref coup d'Ĺil aux yeux rouges et larmoyants de Rena. Au bout d'un moment, il a acquiescĂŠ. ÂŤ Bien sĂťr. Âť Vera a soupirĂŠ de soulagement, mais en mĂŞme temps, elle s'est sentie un peu mal pour Rena. Le vent soufflait fort, et la pluie ne semblait pas vouloir cesser. En revanche, le tonnerre et les ĂŠclairs ĂŠtaient sans pitiĂŠ. Le parking ĂŠtant Ă ciel ouvert, Waylen est allĂŠ chercher sa voiture. Au bout d'un moment, une Bentley Continental GT dorĂŠe s'est arrĂŞtĂŠe devant Rena. Elle n'avait pas de parapluie, mais elle n'a donc pas osĂŠ demander Ă Waylen de sortir de la voiture pour lui tenir un parapluie. Elle s'est empressĂŠe de monter dans la voiture, la pluie tombant sans relâche. Bien qu'elle ait fait aussi vite que possible, elle ĂŠtait trempĂŠe avant d'avoir bouclĂŠ sa ceinture de sĂŠcuritĂŠ. L'eau dĂŠgoulinant de ses cheveux, elle ĂŠtait un peu mal Ă l'aise, craignant que Waylen ne soit pas content d'elle. Mais l'homme n'a fait que lui jeter un coup d'Ĺil. Sans dire un mot, il a dĂŠmarrĂŠ la voiture. Le club ĂŠtait Ă mi-hauteur de la montagne. Le trajet jusqu'au pied de la montagne prendrait un certain temps, et le climatiseur de la voiture ĂŠtait enclenchĂŠ. Rena n'a pas tardĂŠ Ă trembler de froid et ses lèvres sont devenues pâles et bleues. En attendant que le feu passe au vert, Waylen lui a tendu un manteau et lui a dit : ÂŤ Tiens. Âť Rena l'a remerciĂŠ d'un signe de tĂŞte. Dès que Rena a enfilĂŠ le manteau, elle a soupirĂŠ de soulagement Ă cause de la chaleur que cela lui procurait. Mais Waylen n'a pas ĂŠteint le climatiseur. Il ĂŠtait trop concentrĂŠ sur la route Ă suivre. C'ĂŠtait un jour d'orage, et la circulation ĂŠtait dense en ville. Waylen a allumĂŠ une cigarette et en a tirĂŠ une longue bouffĂŠe, avant de demander nonchalamment : ÂŤ Pendant combien de temps ĂŠtais-tu avec Harold ? Âť Rena s'est raidie Ă cette question. Mais elle n'avait aucune raison d'ĂŞtre malhonnĂŞte. ÂŤ Pendant quatre ans. Âť Waylen ĂŠtait un peu surpris. &8& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/14431410-fb_contact-frj | Lime novel | https://www.facebook.com/100090847180115/ | 682 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.kifflire.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/14431410-fb_contact-frj36_1-241102-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=1873316979751191&rawadid=120213523956340736 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465613373_2358078767873655_3193044879402760346_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=3SST7vGGy2oQ7kNvgFx1j__&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AoNfRTCW6JJVZn0BtCRxi4q&oh=00_AYDJ9kYLw3412KOjSjd54zLe2cUYlMPJq4S2wWM8uAuzCA&oe=67308808 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Lime novel | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,570 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
Le retour de l'hĂŠritière adorĂŠe | Alors que la vĂŠritable hĂŠritière revient, les spectateurs se moquent de la fin de la fausse hĂŠritière. Elle revient cependant en tant que fille d'un milliardaire de premier plan, assumant le rĂ´le de juge dans le concours de la vraie hĂŠritière, mettant fin au contrat de ses parents adoptifs, soutenue par des magnats des affaires et stupĂŠfiant tout le monde! ===== ÂŤ Madisyn, pendant toutes ces annĂŠes que nous t'avons ĂŠlevĂŠe, nous ne t'avons jamais imaginĂŠe capable d'une telle cruautĂŠ. Cette maison n'est plus en mesure de supporter ta prĂŠsence. Tu dois partir immĂŠdiatement Âť. A dĂŠclarĂŠ l'imposante femme, dont le regard ĂŠtait chargĂŠ de dĂŠdain et d'un froid glacial et l'ĂŠlĂŠgance vestimentaire contrastait fortement avec la duretĂŠ de ses propos, devant Madisyn Chapman. ÂŤ Maman, je t'en prie, c'ĂŠtait un accident. J'ai perdu pied et j'ai dĂŠvalĂŠ les escaliers toute seule. Madisyn n'a rien Ă voir lĂ -dedans Âť, a dĂŠclarĂŠ une jeune fille assise dans le canapĂŠ. Ressemblant physiquement Ă la femme en face d'elle, elle les yeux pleins de larmes. Une demi-heure plus tĂ´t, Jenna Chapman, la fille biologique des Chapman, avait fait une chute dans l'escalier. Madisyn ĂŠtait alors seule Ă l'ĂŠtage supĂŠrieur. Tout le monde pensait que Madisyn avait poussĂŠ Jenna... Maintenant, les regards que les Chapman lançaient Ă Madisyn ĂŠtaient remplis de dĂŠgoĂťt et de venin, un contraste frappant avec leur attitude une semaine auparavant, lorsqu'ils avaient professĂŠ devant les journalistes leur rĂŠticence Ă se sĂŠparer d'elle. Madisyn a baissĂŠ les yeux vers le sol, une ombre fugace d'ironie traversant son regard. Autrefois, Madisyn ĂŠtait la seule fille des Chapman. MĂŞme si elle n'avait jamais bĂŠnĂŠficiĂŠ du favoritisme de ses parents, elle ne manquait de rien, ses besoins essentiels ĂŠtant toujours satisfaits. Mais la façade avait volĂŠ en ĂŠclats lorsque Jeffry Chapman, qu'elle connaissait comme son père, avait ĂŠtĂŠ victime d'un grave accident qui avait nĂŠcessitĂŠ une transfusion s*nguine urgente. Les analyses suivantes avaient rĂŠvĂŠlĂŠ que Madisyn n'ĂŠtait pas son enfant biologique. Jeffry avait ensuite fait appel Ă son vaste rĂŠseau pour retrouver sa vĂŠritable fille, Jenna. La famille Chapman ĂŠtait une famille prestigieuse dans la ville de Gemond, et les nouvelles de ce genre s'ĂŠtaient naturellement rĂŠpandues rapidement. Pour gĂŠrer l'opinion publique et prĂŠserver leur rĂŠputation, ils avaient dĂŠclarĂŠ un engagement inĂŠbranlable envers Madisyn, la fille qu'ils avaient ĂŠlevĂŠe, affirmant leur intention de la traiter comme leur propre fille pendant un certain temps avant qu'elle ne retourne dans sa famille biologique. Cependant, derrière les portes closes, leurs plans ĂŠtaient radicalement diffĂŠrents. Une fois le regard du public dĂŠtournĂŠ, ils avaient l'intention de renvoyer discrètement Madisyn. Ă l'arrivĂŠe de Jenna, la famille Chapman avait reprochĂŠ Ă Madisyn les annĂŠes de galère de Jenna, relĂŠguant Madisyn de sa chambre Ă un simple espace de rangement, diminuant ainsi considĂŠrablement son statut. Elle ĂŠtait chargĂŠe de tâches subalternes, son statut ĂŠtant bien infĂŠrieur Ă celui des domestiques. Jenna, elle, voulait toujours que Madisyn s'en aille. Elle avait montĂŠ plusieurs plans contre Madisyn, mais ses parents fermaient les yeux, leur mĂŠpris pour Madisyn ĂŠtant Ă peine voilĂŠ. Ces tribulations ont Ă´tĂŠ Ă Madisyn toute illusion sur cette famille hypocrite et l'ont poussĂŠe Ă affronter les injustices qui lui ĂŠtaient imposĂŠes. Alors que les tensions atteignaient leur paroxysme, elle a fait face Ă Jenna, d'une voix rĂŠsolue : ÂŤ Je vais partir, mais pas avant d'avoir remis les pendules Ă l'heure. Je refuse d'endosser tes malversations plus longtemps, Jenna! Âť Le calme de Jenna a vacillĂŠ sous l'intensitĂŠ du regard glacial de Madisyn, son corps tremblant lĂŠgèrement. S'agissait-il de la mĂŞme Madisyn que celle qui s'ĂŠtait pliĂŠe Ă toutes les avanies ? Une lueur sombre s'est reflĂŠtĂŠe dans les yeux de Jenna. Elle ĂŠtait l'hĂŠritière lĂŠgitime des biens de la famille Chapman, pas cette usurpatrice, Madisyn, qui vivait dans un luxe immĂŠritĂŠ. Elle devait cĂ´ute que coĂťte chasser cet imposteur! ÂŤ Madisyn, j'ai aucune idĂŠe de ce que tu racontes! Âť La voix de Jenna ĂŠtait empreinte d'une confusion feinte. ÂŤ Depuis que j'ai repris ma place, que j'ai reçu l'affection qui m'ĂŠtait due par nos parents, j'ai senti ton mĂŠcontentement. MalgrĂŠ tes actions, je suis restĂŠe tolĂŠrante. Mais pour mes jambes... Comment pourrais-tu?La danse est ma passion et l'expression de mon âme. Si j'avais su que tu convoitais si dĂŠsespĂŠrĂŠment la place au concours national, je ne l'aurais pas disputĂŠe. Âť Son insinuation ĂŠtait très claire que Madisyn l'avait sabotĂŠe par jalousie. Le regard de la mère de Jenna, Phyllis Chapman, s'est durci aux paroles de sa fille biologique, sa voix ĂŠtant empreinte de dĂŠdain. ÂŤ Jenna, tu possèdes un talent remarquable que Madisyn ne pourra jamais ĂŠgaler. Cette place en compĂŠtition te revenait de droit. Et toi, Madisyn! Âť Elle s'est retournĂŠe brusquement vers Madisyn et a ajoutĂŠ : ÂŤ Fais tes valises et pars immĂŠdiatement! Âť L'expression habituellement sombre de Madisyn n'a fait qu'attiser son mĂŠpris. Pendant ce temps, Jenna, toujours docile et talentueuse, brillait de mille feux dans ses yeux ; c'ĂŠtait une vĂŠritable Chapman. Au milieu de ce drame, Jeffry a finalement rompu le silence, la voix lourde de dĂŠception. ÂŤ Madisyn, notre accord ĂŠtait de te garder jusqu'Ă ce que les regards du public s'apaisent, mais nous voilĂ confrontĂŠs Ă ton profond ressentiment envers Jenna. Nous n'avons pas d'autre choix que de te rendre Ă ta vraie famille aujourd'hui. Âť Les yeux de Jenna ont brillĂŠ d'une lueur triomphante lorsque son père a annoncĂŠ le dĂŠpart imminent de Madisyn. En revanche, le visage de cette dernière est restĂŠ un masque indĂŠchiffrable tandis qu'elle montait les escaliers pour rassembler ses affaires. La longue durĂŠe de Madisyn Ă l'ĂŠtage supĂŠrieur inquiĂŠtait Jenna. ÂŤ Et si elle essayait de tout emporter avec elle?Âť Après tout, tout ce qui avait de la valeur dans la maison lui revenait de droit ; comment pouvait-elle permettre Ă une imposture de partir avec une partie de ses richesses? Madisyn a fini par rĂŠapparaĂŽtre, descendant lentement l'escalier, ses mouvements ĂŠtant dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠs. Elle transportait un petit sac noir sans prĂŠtention. Lorsque son regard a balayĂŠ froidement le salon, il a suffisamment troublĂŠ Jeffry pour qu'il dĂŠtourne les yeux. Les sourcils de Phyllis se sont froncĂŠs Ă la vue du bagage minimal de Madisyn. ÂŤ C'est tout ce que tu veux emporter?Qu'y a-t-il lĂ -dedans?Montre-moi Âť, a-t-elle demandĂŠ, le ton suspicieux. Jeffry a levĂŠ la main pour mettre fin Ă l'interrogatoire de sa femme. ÂŤ Laisse-la tranquille. Âť Il s'agissait sans doute de la carte bancaire qu'il lui avait donnĂŠe et sur laquelle il ne restait qu'une centaine de milliers de dollars. Sans se laisser dĂŠconcerter, Madisyn a posĂŠ son sac sur la table, l'air stoĂŻque. ÂŤ Inspecte-le si tu veux. Âť Phyllis, incapable de masquer sa mĂŠfiance, s'est moquĂŠe. ÂŤ Elle a peut-ĂŞtre emportĂŠ quelque chose de prĂŠcieux Âť, a-t-elle marmonnĂŠ en ouvrant le sac. En jetant un coup d'Ĺil Ă l'intĂŠrieur, elle n'a trouvĂŠ qu'un carnet, quelques graines et une petite somme d'argent, loin des objets de valeur qu'elle craignait. Phyllis, le visage rougi par l'embarras de son accusation sans fondement, s'est redressĂŠe. ÂŤ Je vais laisser le chauffeur t'emmener lĂ -bas Âť, a-t-elle dit d'un ton sec. Jeffry, sous le poids de la situation, a fouillĂŠ dans sa poche et en a sorti une carte. ÂŤ Madisyn, Ă ton retour, ĂŠcoute tes parents. Ce sont des fermiers, certes... mais ils sont bons, ce sont des gens simples. Tu devrais les aider. Âť Madisyn a regardĂŠ la carte offerte avec ses beaux yeux, son expression calme. ÂŤ Chacun a son propre destin Ă accomplir Âť, a-t-elle rĂŠpondu tranquillement, en repoussant la carte vers Jeffry. ÂŤ Mais avant que je ne parte, il faut que les choses soient claires. Jenna, comment es-tu vraiment tombĂŠe dans ces escaliers?C'est ta dernière chance de dire la vĂŠritĂŠ. Âť Jenna fulminait intĂŠrieurement, exaspĂŠrĂŠe par le calme serein de Madisyn, qui semblait l'ĂŠlever au-dessus de tout le monde malgrĂŠ ses origines modestes. Madisyn ne venait pas d'une famille riche! Elle ĂŠtait juste la fille de deux fermiers! ÂŤ Madisyn, qu'est-ce que tu insinues?Que je me suis jetĂŠe dans les escaliers?Âť, a rĂŠtorquĂŠ Jenna. ÂŤ Mes jambes, c'est ma vie, elles sont indispensables Ă ma danse. Pourquoi me blesserais-je?Âť Au fur et Ă mesure qu'elle parlait, les ĂŠmotions de Jenna sont allĂŠes crescendo, et elle a fondu en larmes de façon thÊâtrale, s'effondrant dans les bras de Phyllis. Soudain, Jenna se leva instinctivement Ă cause d'un vase brisĂŠ. Le silence s'est installĂŠ dans la pièce et tout le monde, y compris Phyllis et Jeffry, a tournĂŠ son regard choquĂŠ vers elle. L'agilitĂŠ soudaine de Jenna a ĂŠtĂŠ surprenante ; n'avait-elle pas dit qu'elle ne pouvait pas se tenir debout Ă cause de ses blessures ? Chapitre 2 Le plus riche de Gemond Se rendant compte de son erreur, Jenna s'est effondrĂŠe dans le canapĂŠ, s'agrippant Ă ses jambes avec une dĂŠtresse exagĂŠrĂŠe. ÂŤ AĂŻe, mes jambes! Elles me font si mal! Âť La rĂŠponse de Jeffry n'ĂŠtait pas de la colère mais une culpabilitĂŠ dirigĂŠe vers Madisyn. ÂŤ Madisyn, comprends que Jenna est encore très jeune. Ne lui en veux pas... Âť Madisyn ĂŠtait habituĂŠe Ă entendre ce genre d'excuse trop souvent. ÂŤ Bien sĂťr, je ne me vengerais pas si un chien me mordait. Après tout, il apprend ce genre de comportement de ses maĂŽtres, n'est-ce pas?Âť Avec un dernier ricanement qui a tranchĂŠ l'air tendu, Madisyn a pris son modeste sac et s'est dirigĂŠe vers la porte, d'un pas dĂŠcidĂŠ et inĂŠbranlable. Elle ne s'est pas retournĂŠe vers la famille qu'elle laissait derrière elle. Le trio qu'elle laissait dans son sillage fulminait de fureur. Dehors, le chauffeur attendait, inconscient de l'agitation qui rĂŠgnait entre les murs de la maison des Chapman. Depuis le retour de Jenna, le respect du personnel de la maison pour Madisyn s'ĂŠtait considĂŠrablement dĂŠgradĂŠ ; mĂŞme le chauffeur ne l'avait pas saluĂŠe comme il se devait lorsqu'elle s'ĂŠtait approchĂŠe. Ignorant sa prĂŠsence, Madisyn est passĂŠe devant lui, la posture droite et rĂŠsolue. Le chauffeur, la rattrapant avec un soupçon d'urgence dans ses pas, a appelĂŠ : ÂŤ Madisyn, on m'a dit de te conduire Ă ta destination. Âť Madisyn s'est arrĂŞtĂŠe, se tournant lĂŠgèrement pour donner sa rĂŠponse, son ton glacial : ÂŤ Pas la peine. Ă partir de maintenant, je ne veux plus rien avoir Ă faire avec la famille Chapman. Âť Sur ces derniers mots, elle a hĂŠlĂŠ un taxi et a indiquĂŠ au chauffeur l'adresse que Jeffry lui avait envoyĂŠe sur son tĂŠlĂŠphone. La destination ĂŠtait un village humble et dĂŠlabrĂŠ, loin de l'opulence qu'elle avait connue. En arrivant, elle a remarquĂŠ l'ĂŠtat de dĂŠlabrement de la maison de ses parents biologiques, l'air rempli de cris ĂŠtouffĂŠs qui lui ont serrĂŠ le cĹur. En entrant, elle a vu beaucoup de monde. Le contraste ĂŠtait saisissant. Un homme vĂŞtu d'un costume propre et ĂŠlĂŠgant, entourĂŠ de gardes du corps, se tenait devant un couple en pleurs, vĂŞtu d'un simple costume de paysan. Alors que Madisyn contemplait ce tableau surrĂŠaliste, l'homme s'est retournĂŠ, les yeux remplis de rouge et d'incrĂŠdulitĂŠ. Il s'est prĂŠcipitĂŠ vers elle, les bras grands ouverts. ÂŤ Ma fille, c'est bien toi! Je ne peux pas croire que tu sois vraiment vivante! Âť La voix de l'homme grand et imposant s'est brisĂŠe sous le coup de l'ĂŠmotion. Madisyn est restĂŠe bouche bĂŠe. Qui ĂŠtait cet homme et pourquoi agissait-il de la sorte ? Madisyn a absorbĂŠ les regards larmoyants du couple de paysans devant elle. Sa voix, tremblante de confusion, a finalement rompu le silence. ÂŤ Maman, papa, qu'est-ce qui se passe?Âť Le fermier a soupirĂŠ lourdement, sa voix ĂŠtant fatiguĂŠe par le poids de vĂŠritĂŠs inavouĂŠes. ÂŤ Madisyn, nous ne sommes pas tes vĂŠritables parents. Jenna est la fille lĂŠgitime des Chapman, mais toi, tu n'es pas la nĂ´tre. Notre bĂŠbĂŠ est mort-nĂŠ. Âť Il a marquĂŠ une pause, faisant un geste vers l'homme bien habillĂŠ. ÂŤ Cet homme est ton vrai père. Âť Madisyn a regardĂŠ l'ĂŠtranger, notant les similitudes indĂŠniables entre leurs traits. L'homme a sorti un document de sa mallette, sa main tremblant lĂŠgèrement. ÂŤ Madisyn, quand je t'ai vue pour la première fois Ă l'hĂ´pital, quelque chose en toi m'a interpellĂŠ, mĂŞme si je l'ai ĂŠcartĂŠ Ă ce moment-lĂ Âť, a-t-il expliquĂŠ, la voix ĂŠtranglĂŠe par l'ĂŠmotion. ÂŤ Après avoir entendu parler des retrouvailles des Chapman avec leur vraie fille, j'ai voulu savoir s'il n'y avait pas eu une erreur. Ce test de paternitĂŠ a confirmĂŠ mes soupçons. Tu es bien ma fille. Âť En prenant le rapport, Madisyn a vu noir sur blanc la preuve indĂŠniable. D'ailleurs, mĂŞme sans cela, leur ressemblance en disait long. La rĂŠponse de la jeune femme ĂŠtait un silence rempli de pensĂŠes tumultueuses. Cette rĂŠvĂŠlation, ce nouveau rebondissement dans son rĂŠcit dĂŠjĂ complexe, l'a submergĂŠe. L'homme a continuĂŠ : ÂŤ C'est beaucoup de choses Ă assimiler, je sais. Mais voici la vĂŠritĂŠ. La nuit de ta naissance, une erreur tragique s'est produite au sein de l'hĂ´pital. Ă cause de la nĂŠgligence d'une infirmière, trois familles ont vu leurs vies s'entremĂŞler sans le savoir. L'enfant de ce couple a ĂŠtĂŠ dĂŠclarĂŠ mort-nĂŠ et nous a ĂŠtĂŠ remis par erreur, tu as fini chez les Chapman, et Jenna a ĂŠtĂŠ amenĂŠe ici. Âť ÂŤ Ta mère et moi ĂŠtions dĂŠvastĂŠs, pensant que nous t'avions perdue Âť, a-t-il ajoutĂŠ, les yeux humides. ÂŤ Tu ne peux pas savoir Ă quel point cela a affectĂŠ ta mère. Elle attend anxieusement Ă l'hĂ´tel, espĂŠrant enfin te rencontrer. Âť TouchĂŠe par sa sincĂŠritĂŠ, Madisyn a hochĂŠ lentement la tĂŞte, son regard se portant Ă nouveau sur les fermiers. La voix de l'homme en costume s'est adoucie lorsqu'il a promis : ÂŤ Tout cela n'ĂŠtait qu'un accident. Ils sont eux aussi des victimes. J'ai l'intention de leur offrir une compensation pour leur perte. Âť Le fermier a fait un signe de la main dĂŠdaigneux, mais sa voix est restĂŠe ferme. ÂŤ Nous n'avons pas besoin de compensation, la vĂŠritĂŠ nous suffit. Âť Il y avait dans la voix du fermier une pointe de lassitude mĂŞlĂŠe Ă une subtile dĂŠsillusion. Sa relation avec Jenna, la fille que sa femme et lui avaient ĂŠlevĂŠe comme leur propre fille, s'ĂŠtait dĂŠtĂŠriorĂŠe après qu'elle avait retrouvĂŠ sa famille biologique ; elle avait cessĂŠ toute communication avec eux. ÂŤ Vous devriez rentrer chez vous maintenant. Votre famille sera enfin rĂŠunie, ne perdez pas votre temps ici Âť, a-t-il dit, son expression mĂŞlant tristesse et dĂŠtachement, tandis qu'il guidait Madisyn et l'homme en costume vers la porte. Madisyn a suivi l'homme en costume jusqu'Ă une rutilante Rolls-Royce garĂŠe sur le trottoir. L'opulence du vĂŠhicule contrastait fortement avec la modeste maison dont elle venait de sortir. ÂŤ Madisyn, moi c'est Glenn Johns, ton père. Ă partir de maintenant, je suis lĂ pour toi ; n'hĂŠsite pas Ă me demander ce dont tu as besoin Âť, a dit l'homme en costume, d'une voix douce mais ferme. La prise de conscience s'est faite lentement : Glenn Johns n'ĂŠtait pas seulement un homme riche, il ĂŠtait le PDG du Groupe Johns, l'homme le plus riche de Gemond. Les implications de sa nouvelle lignĂŠe ont commencĂŠ Ă s'installer, lourdes et profondes. Madisyn a acquiescĂŠ lentement. L'HĂ´tel d'Alpenglow ĂŠtait le plus luxueux de Gemond. Jenna, vĂŞtue d'une robe Chanel fluide, incarnait l'ĂŠlĂŠgance lorsqu'elle est entrĂŠe dans le grand hall d'entrĂŠe avec ses parents. L'occasion ĂŠtait capitale ; Phyllis venait d'apprendre que Lynda Johns, vice-prĂŠsidente de l'Association Nationale de Danse et juge de la compĂŠtition nationale, ĂŠtait en ville. Phyllis avait vite compris que le fait d'ĂŞtre sous la tutelle de Lynda pouvait permettre Ă Jenna de remporter le championnat. Dans cette optique, elle avait fait habiller Jenna de ses plus beaux atours et l'avait emmenĂŠe en vitesse Ă l'hĂ´tel. Mais Ă leur arrivĂŠe, une surprise les attendait. De l'autre cĂ´tĂŠ du hall, Madisyn se tenait debout, habillĂŠe simplement d'un T-shirt et d'un jean, mais elle se comportait avec une grâce posĂŠe qui semblait attirer les regards. Ă cĂ´tĂŠ d'elle se trouvait un homme en costume, dont la prĂŠsence ĂŠtait impressionnante, mĂŞme si Phyllis ne voyait pas les traits de celui-ci. ÂŤ Madisyn?Qu'est-ce qu'elle fait ici?Âť, a murmurĂŠ Phyllis sous sa respiration, son ton mĂŞlant confusion et agacement. Chapitre 3 Sa vraie famille ÂŤ La nouvelle de l'arrivĂŠe de Mme Johns a sans doute ĂŠtĂŠ divulguĂŠe Âť, a dĂŠclarĂŠ Jenna avec une façade d'innocence, sa voix ĂŠtant basse et teintĂŠe de curiositĂŠ. ÂŤ On dirait que Madisyn veut aussi apprendre de Mme Johns qui ne sait peut-ĂŞtre pas encore que Madisyn a ĂŠtĂŠ chassĂŠe de chez nous. On dirait que nous pourrions toutes les deux finir par devenir ses ĂŠlèves! Âť Le visage de Phyllis s'est assombri d'inquiĂŠtude aux paroles de Jenna. Elle s'est prĂŠcipitĂŠe, son intention ĂŠtant claire : intercepter Madisyn avant qu'elle n'ait pu ĂŠtablir des relations influentes. Mais Madisyn se dirigeait dĂŠjĂ rapidement vers la Salle d'Ămeraude, la salle la plus exclusive et la plus privĂŠe de l'hĂ´tel. Phyllis est restĂŠe perplexe. Pourquoi Madisyn se rendrait-elle dans la Salle d'Ămeraude ? Jenna, rattrapĂŠe par son retard, a partagĂŠ la surprise de sa mère. ÂŤ Maman, cette salle n'est pas ouverte Ă tout le monde. On dirait que Madisyn a plus de contacts qu'on ne le pensait. Elle doit avoir des amis très impressionnants. Âť ÂŤ Quel genre d'amis pourrait-elle bien avoir?Âť, a marmonnĂŠ Phyllis avec amertume, son esprit s'emballant avec des hypothèses dĂŠfavorables. Le dĂŠgoĂťt l'a momentanĂŠment envahie alors que Phyllis ĂŠtait aux prises avec ces pensĂŠes, mais elle n'a pas eu le temps de s'y attarder. Avec un sentiment d'urgence, elle a sorti son tĂŠlĂŠphone et a appelĂŠ Lynda. ÂŤ Toutes mes excuses, je suis en train de traiter une affaire urgente. Âť La voix de Lynda ĂŠtait dĂŠtachĂŠe et vive au tĂŠlĂŠphone avant qu'elle ne mette fin Ă l'appel. Jenna ĂŠtant accablĂŠe par le dĂŠcouragement, son moral a chutĂŠ et elle s'est masquĂŠ le visage avec ses mains, des larmes coulant entre ses doigts. Jeffry l'a enlacĂŠe, sa voix empreinte d'une douce assurance. ÂŤ Jenna, ne t'inquiète pas. Nous aurons d'autres occasions. Nous trouverons un autre moyen. Âť Pendant ce temps, Lynda a reposĂŠ son tĂŠlĂŠphone sur le coussin Ă cĂ´tĂŠ d'elle. Son frère Glenn avait organisĂŠ une rĂŠunion de famille immĂŠdiate après la dĂŠcouverte de sa fille perdue de vue depuis longtemps. ÂŤ Madisyn a dĂť traverser beaucoup d'ĂŠpreuves au fil des ans Âť, a dĂŠclarĂŠ Kristine Johns, assise ĂŠlĂŠgamment Ă cĂ´tĂŠ de Lynda. Elle avait des traits remarquables, un maquillage exquis et ĂŠtait habillĂŠe d'une robe luxueuse. Bien qu'elle renvoie l'image d'une dame raffinĂŠe, son expression trahissait une profonde inquiĂŠtude. Lynda a rĂŠpondu pensivement : ÂŤ J'ai entendu dire que son ancienne famille l'avait bien traitĂŠe. Elle n'a peut-ĂŞtre pas ĂŠtĂŠ confrontĂŠe aux difficultĂŠs que nous imaginons. Âť La rĂŠponse de Kristine ĂŠtait empreinte de conviction. ÂŤ Il est essentiel que nous lui apportions notre chaleur et notre soutien. Âť Lynda a caressĂŠ affectueusement la tĂŞte de Kristine, fière du bon caractère de son ĂŠlève. Cette dernière avait ĂŠtĂŠ adoptĂŠe par la famille Johns. L'accueil qu'elle a rĂŠservĂŠ Ă Madisyn a mis en ĂŠvidence son esprit gĂŠnĂŠreux et sa gentillesse. Elle n'avait pas peur que le retour de Madisyn menace son statut. Dans un coin, Elaine Johns ĂŠtait assise tranquillement, le regard fixĂŠ sur la porte, impatiente et dans l'expectative. Kristine a perçu l'intensitĂŠ du regard d'Elaine et s'est sentie mal Ă l'aise. Enfin, la porte s'est ouverte, la jeune femme qui entrait ĂŠtait magnifique, ses traits exquis et distants reflĂŠtant ceux d'Elaine de manière suffisamment frappante pour affirmer leur parentĂŠ. Kristine a ressenti un vide inexplicable Ă cette vue. Elaine, incapable de contenir ses ĂŠmotions plus longtemps, s'est ĂŠlancĂŠe en avant. ÂŤ Ma fille! Âť, s'est-elle exclamĂŠe en serrant Madisyn dans ses bras, ses larmes coulant Ă flots. Madisyn est restĂŠe momentanĂŠment abasourdie par l'intensitĂŠ de l'accueil, ses mains tapotant avec hĂŠsitation le dos d'Elaine. Elle sentait naĂŽtre en elle une nouvelle chaleur, une chaleur familiale. C'ĂŠtait donc ça, avoir une famille aimante. ÂŤ Laisse Madisyn s'asseoir d'abord Âť, a dit Glenn d'une voix douce. Alors qu'ils s'installaient dans le canapĂŠ, Elaine s'est accrochĂŠe Ă Madisyn, essayant de stabiliser sa voix Ă travers ses larmes. ÂŤ Madisyn, je suis dĂŠsolĂŠe qu'il nous ait fallu autant de temps pour te retrouver. Tu as dĂť endurer tellement de choses. Âť ÂŤ Je... Ăa va, ça va. Je vais bien. Âť Les larmes d'Elaine, chaudes et sincères, ont coulĂŠ sur la main de Madisyn, laissant celle-ci quelque peu dĂŠsemparĂŠe. TouchĂŠe par une telle dĂŠmonstration de sincĂŠritĂŠ, elle a gentiment rassurĂŠ Elaine : ÂŤ Ne pleure pas, maman. Nous sommes ensemble maintenant. Âť Le terme ÂŤ maman Âť a semblĂŠ susciter une joie profonde chez Elaine, dont la voix s'est mise Ă trembler lorsqu'elle a rĂŠpondu : ÂŤ Oui, tu es de retour. Et je promets de tout arranger. Âť Glenn a observĂŠ l'ĂŠchange avec un sourire radieux, son impatience ĂŠtant palpable lorsqu'il a regardĂŠ Madisyn. Sentant le poids de son regard, la jeune femme s'est tournĂŠe vers lui. ÂŤ Hum... Papa. Âť ÂŤ Nous sommes si heureux d'ĂŞtre rĂŠunis avec toi, ma Madisyn. Âť Glenn rayonnait, son visage s'illuminant de bonheur, une expression rare de pure joie. ÂŤ Laisse-moi te prĂŠsenter Ă notre famille. Voici ta tante Lynda. Âť Lynda a observĂŠ Madisyn, lui adressant un lĂŠger signe de tĂŞte en guise de reconnaissance. Madisyn lui a rendu le geste avec une chaleur polie. Puis c'ĂŠtait au tour de Kristine. Le sourire de celle-ci ĂŠtait radieux lorsqu'elle s'est adressĂŠe Ă Madisyn. ÂŤ J'attendais depuis si longtemps de pouvoir enfin le dire ; j'ai maintenant une sĹur dont je peux me vanter. Âť Elaine est intervenue, la voix teintĂŠe d'une pointe d'hĂŠsitation : ÂŤ Voici Kristine. Son père ĂŠtait un ami proche de ton père. Kristine a perdu ses parents quand elle ĂŠtait enfant, et nous l'avons recueillie. Si cela te met mal Ă l'aise... Âť ÂŤ Ce n'est pas grave. Âť Madisyn l'a interrompue doucement, comprenant ce qu'elle voulait dire. ÂŤ Tu as aussi trois frères, mais ils ne sont pas lĂ pour l'instant. Nous ferons en sorte que tu les rencontres plus tard! Âť Elaine a continuĂŠ, un sourire illuminant son visage alors qu'elle observait le hochement de tĂŞte de Madisyn qui acceptait. Glenn a pris son tĂŠlĂŠphone. ÂŤ Ăa a sans doute ĂŠtĂŠ dur pour toi pendant toutes ces annĂŠes, Madisyn. Commençons par ĂŠchanger nos numĂŠros Âť, a-t-il suggĂŠrĂŠ. Elaine s'est empressĂŠe de lui emboĂŽter le pas en sortant aussi son tĂŠlĂŠphone. ÂŤ Ăchange ton numĂŠro avec moi aussi Âť, a-t-elle ajoutĂŠ avec empressement. Après que Madisyn a ĂŠchangĂŠ ses numĂŠros avec eux, son tĂŠlĂŠphone a bourdonnĂŠ de deux notifications. Son père lui avait envoyĂŠ dix millions de dollars par le biais de Venmo, et sa mère avait fait de mĂŞme. Glenn a souri, sa voix empreinte d'une gĂŠnĂŠrositĂŠ dĂŠsinvolte. ÂŤ Voici un peu d'argent de poche de la part de maman et papa. Si ce n'est pas assez pour toi, fais-le-moi savoir. Âť La chaleur d'Elaine n'a pas faibli. ÂŤ Et j'ai choisi des vĂŞtements pour toi. Tu pourras les essayer quand nous rentrerons Ă la maison! Âť Ce tourbillon de gĂŠnĂŠrositĂŠ n'ĂŠtait pas familier Ă Madisyn, mais il lui apportait une chaleur qu'elle n'avait jamais connue. Mais Kristine se sentait Ă la fois mal Ă l'aise et choquĂŠe. Glenn et Elaine venaient de transfĂŠrer en toute dĂŠcontraction vingt millions de dollars Ă Madisyn, une somme qui ĂŠclipsait sa propre allocation mensuelle, relativement modeste. Ătait-ce parce que Madisyn ĂŠtait leur enfant biologique et qu'elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ adoptĂŠe ? Chapitre 4 Son frère Pendant tout le repas, Elaine et Glenn se sont relayĂŠs pour dĂŠposer de la nourriture dans l'assiette de Madisyn, la nourriture empilĂŠe ressemblant Ă une petite montagne. Lorsque Madisyn a tout fini, son estomac ĂŠtait plein. C'ĂŠtait un vĂŠritable flot d'affection, inĂŠdit et rĂŠconfortant, qui s'exprimait Ă travers chaque plat offert par ses parents. La sonnerie soudaine du tĂŠlĂŠphone de Glenn a coupĂŠ court Ă ce moment. Il a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil Ă l'identifiant de l'appelant et un large sourire s'est dessinĂŠ sur son visage. ÂŤ Madisyn, c'est l'un de tes frères aĂŽnĂŠs qui est en ligne, le plus jeune d'entre eux. Il est impatient de te rencontrer. Âť Il a rĂŠpondu Ă l'appel vidĂŠo, et une voix dĂŠbordante d'enthousiasme s'est fait entendre. ÂŤ Tu l'as retrouvĂŠe?J'ai hâte de la voir! Âť Glenn a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil Ă Madisyn, qui a fait un timide signe de tĂŞte, ce qui a incitĂŠ Glenn Ă orienter le tĂŠlĂŠphone vers elle. ÂŤ La voilĂ , ta petite sĹur, Madisyn. Âť ÂŤ Ouais, on est vraiment de la mĂŞme famille! Âť Le visage Ă l'ĂŠcran s'est illuminĂŠ d'un sourire malicieux. Le cĹur de Madisyn a sautĂŠ un battement lorsqu'elle a reconnu Waylon, une cĂŠlèbre star de cinĂŠma laurĂŠate d'un prix. En un instant, son univers s'est ĂŠlargi, ses liens familiaux s'ĂŠtant ĂŠtendus Ă des domaines qu'elle n'avait jamais imaginĂŠs. ÂŤ Salut Âť, a dit Madisyn, sa voix n'ĂŠtant qu'un doux chuchotement. L'excitation de Waylon Johns a traversĂŠ le tĂŠlĂŠphone. ÂŤ Madisyn, je suis coincĂŠ sur le plateau en ce moment, donc je ne peux pas revenir, mais je t'enverrai bientĂ´t quelque chose de spĂŠcial! Âť Son affection ĂŠtait ĂŠvidente. MalgrĂŠ leur lien biologique rĂŠcemment dĂŠcouvert, la chaleur de Waylon ĂŠtait authentique et immĂŠdiate. Waylon et ses frères espĂŠraient depuis longtemps avoir une petite sĹur. Ils avaient bien Kristine, mais elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ adoptĂŠe par leurs parents alors qu'elle n'ĂŠtait plus un bĂŠbĂŠ, et elle n'ĂŠtait pas liĂŠe Ă eux par le sang, ce qui faisait qu'ils n'ĂŠtaient pas si proches. Waylon s'est alors tournĂŠ vers l'homme noble et distant qui se trouvait Ă ses cĂ´tĂŠs. ÂŤ Andrew, voici ma sĹur. N'est-elle pas adorable?Âť Andrew Klein, connu pour sa rĂŠserve et sa prestance, a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil Ă l'ĂŠcran. Dès qu'il a vu la jeune fille sur l'ĂŠcran, son regard jusqu'alors dĂŠcontractĂŠ s'est instantanĂŠment figĂŠ. Les longs cheveux souples de Madisyn descendaient sur ses ĂŠpaules et ses traits dĂŠlicats, qui reflĂŠtaient remarquablement les traits de la famille Johns, ĂŠtaient très sĂŠduisants. Ses yeux ambrĂŠs, empreints d'un soupçon de paresse et d'indiffĂŠrence, semblaient apaiser quiconque entrait en contact avec sa vue. Les yeux d'Andrew ĂŠtaient profonds. Madisyn est restĂŠe calme pendant l'appel vidĂŠo, mais la rĂŠaction de Kristine a ĂŠtĂŠ moins contrĂ´lĂŠe. Ă la mention de ÂŤ Andrew Âť, le corps de cette dernière s'est raidi, ses yeux s'ĂŠtant fixĂŠs sur l'ĂŠcran oĂš Andrew apparaissait plus frappant que jamais. Son attitude distante lui a fait soupçonner qu'il n'accorderait pas beaucoup d'attention Ă Madisyn. ÂŤ Salut. Âť La salutation d'Andrew ĂŠtait brève, sa voix basse. Kristine a ressenti un malaise, ses ongles s'enfonçant dans sa paume. Elle s'est rassurĂŠe silencieusement en se disant que le salut d'Andrew n'ĂŠtait qu'une formalitĂŠ. Madisyn a rĂŠpondu par un hochement de tĂŞte poli, son attitude ĂŠtant calme et dĂŠtachĂŠe. Waylon a continuĂŠ Ă bavarder au tĂŠlĂŠphone avec Madisyn jusqu'Ă ce que Glenn intervienne, lui rappelant de ne pas priver Madisyn de son repas. MĂŞme si son père lui a raccrochĂŠ au nez, Waylon ĂŠtait visiblement ravi, se retournant vers Andrew avec un sourire. ÂŤ C'est ma petite sĹur perdue de vue depuis longtemps. N'est-elle pas adorable?Il faut que je finisse vite et que j'aille la retrouver. Âť Il lui a ensuite lancĂŠ une invitation dĂŠcontractĂŠe. ÂŤ Andrew, tu veux venir avec moi?Âť Il savait qu'Andrew ĂŠvitait gĂŠnĂŠralement de se rendre Ă la rĂŠsidence de la famille Johns en raison de l'affection manifeste de Kristine. Il y avait eu un ancien arrangement concernant un mariage potentiel entre la famille Johns et la famille Klein, mais il s'agissait simplement d'un accord verbal conclu par les aĂŽnĂŠs. Les Klein, une famille importante de la ville d'Ansport, ĂŠtaient bien supĂŠrieure en statut et en influence aux Johns de Gemond, et Kristine semblait encore plus dĂŠlirante lorsqu'elle s'accrochait Ă l'idĂŠe d'ĂŠpouser Andrew. Andrew, le regard intense et distant, lui a rĂŠpondu nonchalamment : ÂŤ Bien sĂťr, ça fait un moment que je n'ai pas vu tes parents. Âť Waylon a clignĂŠ des yeux, dĂŠcontenancĂŠ par l'acceptation inattendue d'Andrew. Ătait-il vraiment sĂŠrieux ? Chapitre 5 La sotte arrogante Ă la fin du repas, tous les membres de la famille Johns se sont dirigĂŠs vers leur vaste manoir, qui ĂŠclipsait la villa plus simple de la famille Chapman, tant par son ampleur que par sa splendeur. La propriĂŠtĂŠ dĂŠgageait une ĂŠlĂŠgance royale, Ă l'image d'un château par sa grandeur. Elaine a impatiemment escortĂŠ Madisyn Ă travers les vastes couloirs jusqu'Ă une chambre spĂŠcialement prĂŠparĂŠe. La chambre ĂŠtait une vĂŠritable vision de la grâce fĂŠminine, dĂŠcorĂŠe de teintes dĂŠlicates et d'ornements bien pensĂŠs, qui rendaient Madisyn muette Ă cause de son ambiance trop fĂŠminine. Au milieu de cette retraite enchanteresse, Elaine a regardĂŠ Madisyn avec des yeux pleins d'attente et lui a demandĂŠ doucement : ÂŤ Madisyn, est-ce que c'est Ă ton goĂťt?Âť ÂŤ Oui, j'adore Âť, a rĂŠpondu Madisyn, la voix teintĂŠe d'un soupçon d'impuissance. Elaine ĂŠtait ravie et lui a serrĂŠ la main avec douceur. ÂŤ C'est très agrĂŠable! Si tu as besoin de quoi que ce soit, tu n'as qu'Ă me le dire Âť, a-t-elle dit, pĂŠtillante de joie. ÂŤ Maintenant, laisse-moi te montrer la garde-robe que ton père et moi avons choisie pour toi! Âť Elaine a ouvert les portes de l'armoire d'un geste majestueux. Les yeux de Madisyn se sont ĂŠcarquillĂŠs devant la multitude de robes exquises et opulentes qui scintillaient sous l'ĂŠclairage tamisĂŠ. ÂŤ Ce n'est que le dĂŠbut. Il y en a d'autres qui arriveront demain Âť, a annoncĂŠ Elaine. ÂŤ Merci, maman, mais n'est-ce pas un peu trop?Âť, a demandĂŠ Madisyn. Elaine a ĂŠclatĂŠ de rire, ĂŠcartant l'inquiĂŠtude. ÂŤ Oh, jamais! Une fille n'a jamais trop de robes. Cet après-midi, nous allons faire du shopping pour que tu puisses ajouter tout ce qui te plaira! Âť, a-t-elle dĂŠclarĂŠ avec un sourire gĂŠnĂŠreux. Madisyn, bien que dĂŠpassĂŠe, a ressenti une profonde chaleur dans les gestes qui l'entouraient. Elaine avait l'intention d'attendre quelques jours avant de changer le nom de Madisyn. Mais celle-ci, sentant l'amour sincère d'Elaine et de Glenn, ne voyait aucune raison d'attendre. L'après-midi mĂŞme, ils se sont rendus Ă la mairie locale, oĂš Madisyn a officiellement adoptĂŠ le nom de famille Johns, devenant Madisyn Johns. Une fois les formalitĂŠs lĂŠgales accomplies, Elaine a serrĂŠ la main de Madisyn, la voix pleine d'excitation. ÂŤ ChĂŠrie, allons faire du shopping et voyons ce qui attire ton attention. Âť Glenn les a observĂŠes d'un regard tendre, avec du regret dans le ton. ÂŤ Amusez-vous bien toutes les deux. J'ai du travail cet après-midi et je ne peux pas vous accompagner. VoilĂ dix millions, faites-vous plaisir, peu importe ce que vous trouverez. Âť S'adaptant au style de vie fastueux de ses parents, Madisyn a remerciĂŠ Glenn et a pris la gĂŠnĂŠreuse somme. Il lui a tapotĂŠ la tĂŞte avec amour, ses yeux dĂŠbordant d'affection paternelle. Le Mall de Moonshine ĂŠtait le centre commercial de luxe le mieux classĂŠ de Gemond. Elaine a conduit Madisyn Ă la boutique chic de Chanel, les yeux brillants d'excitation alors qu'elle imaginait sa fille dans chaque pièce. Rapidement, elle a choisi une collection de vĂŞtements. ÂŤ ChĂŠrie, essaie-les. S'ils te conviennent, nous les prendrons tous. Âť Madisyn, qui se sentait un peu dĂŠpassĂŠe, a acquiescĂŠ et a rassemblĂŠ les vĂŞtements. Alors qu'elle se dirigeait vers la cabine d'essayage, elle a remarquĂŠ que Phyllis et Jenna s'approchaient. Jenna, manifestement de mauvaise humeur, a ĂŠtĂŠ amenĂŠe par Phyllis pour se livrer Ă une thĂŠrapie de shopping. Sa surprise de voir Madisyn ĂŠtait ĂŠvidente. ÂŤ Madisyn! Âť, s'est-elle exclamĂŠe, sa voix rĂŠsonnant d'incrĂŠdulitĂŠ. Elaine, qui s'est retournĂŠe Ă la voix, a reconnu le couple instantanĂŠment. Elle s'est radoucie, connaissant le rĂ´le important de la famille Chapman dans l'ĂŠducation de Madisyn. Pour rendre la pareille, Glenn avait dĂŠjĂ acceptĂŠ de travailler avec l'entreprise de la famille Chapman, et il ĂŠtait retournĂŠ Ă l'entreprise un peu plus tĂ´t pour rencontrer Jeffry et discuter de la coopĂŠration. Alors qu'Elaine prĂŠparait un accueil chaleureux, prĂŠvoyant mĂŞme de payer les courses de Phyllis et de Jenna en signe de bonne volontĂŠ, le ton de cette dernière a changĂŠ brusquement. ÂŤ Madisyn, que fais-tu ici?Nous sommes dans une boutique Chanel. Est-ce que tu peux te permettre quoi que ce soit?Âť Phyllis a regardĂŠ attentivement Madisyn, son visage s'assombrissant au fur et Ă mesure qu'elle se souvenait de la scène Ă laquelle elle avait assistĂŠ Ă l'HĂ´tel d'Alpenglow plus tĂ´t dans la journĂŠe. ÂŤ Madisyn, pourquoi tu n'es pas avec tes parents pauvres?Tu achètes des produits de luxe ici, oĂš as-tu trouvĂŠ cet argent?Âť Madisyn, le visage figĂŠ dans un masque de dĂŠtachement glacial, a rĂŠpondu sans la moindre chaleur : ÂŤ Mes affaires ne vous regardent plus. Âť L'opinion de Madisyn sur la famille Chapman a pris forme Ă ce moment-lĂ , reflĂŠtant des annĂŠes de loyautĂŠ non rĂŠciproque. Elle avait ĂŠlevĂŠ leur modeste entreprise au rang de centrale cotĂŠe en bourse, pensant qu'elle avait remboursĂŠ la dette de gratitude pour l'avoir ĂŠlevĂŠe. Pourtant, les Chapman n'ĂŠtaient pas conscients de son aide. L'expression d'Elaine est devenue sĂŠvère alors qu'elle absorbait la duretĂŠ des mots de Phyllis. La famille qu'elle avait imaginĂŠe comme faisant partie du passĂŠ de Madisyn ĂŠtait loin de la rĂŠalitĂŠ qui se prĂŠsentait Ă elle. Ils traitaient Madisyn non pas avec une attention familiale, mais avec une franche hostilitĂŠ. ÂŤ Excusez-moi, j'ai cru comprendre que cette jeune femme ĂŠtait autrefois une fille pour vous, mais pourquoi la traitez-vous ainsi maintenant?Âť, est intervenue Elaine, incapable de retenir sa consternation. Avec un public maintenant prĂŠsent, Phyllis a expirĂŠ profondĂŠment, son visage ĂŠtant un masque de rĂŠsignation douloureuse. ÂŤ En effet, elle ĂŠtait une fille pour moi autrefois. Mais je dois vous avertir, madame, de ne pas vous laisser abuser par sa façade. Elle a profĂŠrĂŠ de nombreux mensonges et a mĂŞme volĂŠ de l'argent Ă notre famille. C'est une honte! Âť Elle a poursuivi, la voix chargĂŠe d'une feinte dĂŠtresse : ÂŤ Ma dĂŠception a ĂŠtĂŠ profonde et je n'ai eu d'autre choix que de l'ĂŠloigner de notre famille, malgrĂŠ les annĂŠes que nous avons passĂŠes Ă l'ĂŠlever. Âť Phyllis ĂŠtait dĂŠterminĂŠe Ă dĂŠpeindre Madisyn sous le pire jour possible, en s'assurant qu'aucune dame fortunĂŠe ne penserait du bien de Madisyn, de peur que le bruit ne se rĂŠpande qu'elle a ĂŠtĂŠ trop sĂŠvère avec cette fausse fille. Pour rendre ses paroles plus convaincantes, elle s'est mĂŞme tamponnĂŠ les yeux, simulant des larmes pour souligner son prĂŠtendu dĂŠsespoir. Phyllis ĂŠtait en train de la discrĂŠditer devant sa propre mère. L'expression de Madisyn s'est durcie, une ĂŠtincelle dangereuse s'allumant dans son regard lorsqu... ...... ==== Madisyn a dĂŠcouvert avec stupeur qu'elle n'ĂŠtait pas l'enfant biologique de ses parents. Ă cause des manigances de la vraie fille, elle a ĂŠtĂŠ mise Ă la porte et est devenue la risĂŠe de tous. Alors qu'on la croyait issue d'une famille de paysans, Madisyn a dĂŠcouvert que son vrai père ĂŠtait l'homme le plus riche de la ville et que ses frères ĂŠtaient des personnalitĂŠs renommĂŠes dans leur domaine respectif. Ils la couvraient d'amour, avant d'apprendre que Madisyn avait sa propre entreprise florissante... Que se passe-t-il ensuite? Le nombre de chapitres affichĂŠs est limitĂŠ. Appuyez sur le bouton ci-dessous pour installer notre application et lire les chapitres suivants. (AccĂŠder automatiquement Ă ce livre en ouvrant l'application) &5& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/19915410-fb_contact-frp | La ville du livre | https://www.facebook.com/61564304550999/ | 274 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.kifflire.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/19915410-fb_contact-frp65_2-0920-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=060236&accid=1192455448315527&rawadid=120211553246910639 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465112001_1065021871957489_1524329447318657556_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=5BkpHimnQR0Q7kNvgFb4Y5-&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKMRjhcK1FlxYvSS3vUvqMl&oh=00_AYC-ijLs7dWGmnZD1kF0p3AdaZdjRRW4RrvoIQM8yeZk7Q&oe=6730693C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | La ville du livre | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,569 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
ĐĐľĐťĐ°Đ˝Đ¸Ń ĐŃĐ˝Ń: ĐĐľŃСкОо ĐŃодНОМонио ĐиŃокŃĐžŃа | Đна ĐąŃНа ĐżŃŃна и пОСднО нОŃŃŃ ĐžŃĐżŃавиНа ŃПоНОо ŃООйŃонио ŃĐ˛ĐžĐľĐźŃ ĐąĐžŃŃŃ. ĐоОМиданнО оо йОŃŃ ĐżĐžŃŃоди нОŃи пОŃвиНŃŃ Ń Đ´Đ˛ĐľŃи оо кОПнаŃŃ Đ¸ ŃкаСаН: ÂŤĐинО ноŃ, нО Ń ĐźĐžĐłŃ ĐżĐžĐşĐ°ĐˇĐ°ŃŃ Đ˛Đ°Đź МивŃŃ Đ´ĐľĐźĐžĐ˝ŃŃŃаŃиŃ.Âť ===== ĐиОНоŃŃа ĐĽŃОПОва, Đ˝Đ°Ń ĐžĐ´Đ¸Đ˛ŃаŃŃŃ Đ˛ кОПандиŃОвко, НоМаНа на ĐşŃОваŃи в гОŃŃиниŃнОП нОПоŃĐľ, пОŃŃопоннО ĐżŃОваНиваŃŃŃ Đ˛ ŃОн. ĐноСапнŃĐš, hĐž как внŃŃŃи Đ˝ĐľŃ ĐżŃОйŃМдаоŃŃŃ Đ˝ĐľĐžĐąŃŃŃниПОо МоНанио, oна ноОŃОСнаннО и ŃŃ Đ˛Đ°ŃиНа ŃоНоŃОн. ĐС-Са ĐžŃŃŃŃŃŃĐ˛Đ¸Ń ĐşĐžĐ˝ŃакŃĐ˝ŃŃ ĐťĐ¸Đ˝Đˇ довŃŃка ĐżĐťĐžŃ Đž видоНа, нО, ĐžŃŃŃкав СнакОПŃŃ ŃĐ°ĐźĐ¸ĐťĐ¸Ń ŃвОоК ĐťŃŃŃоК пОдŃŃги, наМаНа на Đ˝ĐľŃ Đ¸ ĐžŃĐżŃавиНа ŃООйŃонио. ĐĐľŃкОНŃкО ŃокŃнд ŃĐżŃŃŃŃ ĐžĐ˝Đ° пОНŃŃиНа ĐžŃвоŃ. ÂŤ?Âť ĐиОНоŃŃа Đ˝Đ°Ń ĐźŃŃиНаŃŃ Đ¸ пОŃŃŃиНа: ÂŤĐĐľ доНаК вид, ŃŃĐž но пОниПаоŃŃ! ĐŻ в кОПнаŃĐľ 1501Âť. ĐŃĐżŃавив ŃООйŃонио, ĐиОНоŃŃа Ń Đ˝ĐľŃĐľŃпониоП МдаНа ĐžŃвоŃа, нО ŃиŃĐ¸Đ˝Ń Đ˝Đ°ŃŃŃаНО НиŃŃ ŃŃŃокОŃанио ŃвоŃŃкОв. ĐОгда Она ŃОйиŃаНаŃŃ Đ˛ŃŃаŃŃ Ń ĐżĐžŃŃоНи, ŃŃĐžĐąŃ ĐżĐžĐżĐ¸ŃŃ Đ˛ĐžĐ´Ń, вноСапнО ŃаСдаНŃŃ ĐˇĐ˛ĐžĐ˝ĐžĐş в двоŃŃ. ĐовŃŃка но ĐżŃидаНа ŃŃĐžĐźŃ ĐžŃОйОгО СнаŃониŃ, oŃĐşŃŃв двоŃŃ, ĐиОНоŃŃа СаПоŃНа. ÂŤĐĐžŃпОдин ĐŃОНОв?Âť ĐĐžŃ ĐžĐśĐľ, Он нодавнО ĐżŃинŃĐť Đ´ŃŃ. ĐгО кОŃĐžŃкио вОНОŃŃ ĐľŃŃ Đ˝Đľ ŃŃпоНи вŃŃĐžŃ Đ˝ŃŃŃ, а ŃоНО ĐżŃикŃŃваН НиŃŃ ŃŃŃĐ˝ŃĐš ŃŃНкОвŃĐš Ń Đ°ĐťĐ°Ń. ĐНагОдаŃŃ ŃĐ˛ĐžĐľĐźŃ Đ˛ŃŃĐžĐşĐžĐźŃ ŃĐžŃŃŃ Đ¸ ĐşŃĐľĐżĐşĐžĐźŃ ŃоНОŃĐťĐžĐśĐľĐ˝Đ¸Ń ĐžĐ˝ вОСвŃŃаНŃŃ Đ˝Đ°Đ´ ноК и ĐżŃакŃиŃĐľŃки поŃокŃŃваН двоŃнОК ĐżŃĐžŃĐź. ÂŤĐĐžŃпОдин ĐŃОНОв, ŃоП Ń ĐźĐžĐłŃ ĐżĐžĐźĐžŃŃ...Âť ĐŃоМдо ŃоП довŃŃка ŃŃпоНа СакОнŃиŃŃ ĐżŃодНОМонио, mŃĐśŃина ĐąŃĐžŃиНŃŃ Đş ноК... ĐŃвоŃĐ°ĐľĐźĐ°Ń ĐťŃннŃĐź ŃвоŃОП, довŃŃка пОŃаСПŃŃНиНа Ой ŃŃОП и накОноŃ, найŃавŃиŃŃ ŃПоНОŃŃи, ОйвиНа огО ŃĐľŃ ŃŃкаПи. ĐНава 2 ĐвОŃкОŃŃŃ ĐадиПа ĐŃОНОва ĐиОНоŃŃа ĐżŃĐžŃĐ˝ŃНаŃŃ ŃанО ŃŃŃОП и ОйнаŃŃМиНа, НоМа ŃŃдОП Ń ĐźŃĐśŃинОК. ĐОМо! ЧŃĐž Она наŃвОŃиНа? ĐĐľ ŃĐľŃŃŃ Đ˝Đ¸ ПинŃŃŃ, ĐиОНоŃŃа ĐąŃŃŃŃĐž ОдоНаŃŃ, ŃОйŃаНа воŃи и пОйоМаНа Đş ŃŃОКко ŃогиŃŃŃаŃии ĐžŃоНŃ, ŃŃĐžĐąŃ ĐˇĐ°ŃоНиŃŃŃŃ Đ˛ Đ´ŃŃгОК нОПоŃ. ĐŃŃаŃŃŃ ĐżĐžĐ˝ŃŃŃ, ŃŃĐž, ŃŃŃŃ Đ˛ĐžĐˇŃПи, ĐżŃОиСОŃНО ĐżŃĐžŃĐťŃĐź воŃĐľŃОП, Она ĐżŃОвоŃиНа ŃвОК ŃоНоŃОн и ОйнаŃŃМиНа, ŃŃĐž ĐžŃĐżŃавНоннŃĐľ ĐľŃ Đ˝**ŃиŃŃОКнŃĐľ ŃООйŃĐľĐ˝Đ¸Ń Đ˝Đľ Đ´ĐžŃНи Đ´Đž ĐľŃ ĐťŃŃŃоК пОдŃŃги ĐĐťĐ¸Đ˝Ń ĐŃОНОвОК. ĐкаСаНОŃŃ, ŃŃĐž ĐиОНоŃŃа пО ĐžŃийко ĐžŃĐżŃавиНа Đ¸Ń Đ´ŃŃĐłĐžĐźŃ ŃĐľĐťĐžĐ˛ĐľĐşŃ Ń ŃакОК Мо ŃаПиНиоК - ŃĐ˛ĐžĐľĐźŃ Đ˝Đ°ŃаНŃĐ˝Đ¸ĐşŃ Đ¸ гоноŃаНŃĐ˝ĐžĐźŃ Đ´Đ¸ŃокŃĐžŃŃ ĐşĐžĐźĐżĐ°Đ˝Đ¸Đ¸ ÂŤĐŃŃонŃиŃÂť, ĐĐ°Đ´Đ¸ĐźŃ ĐŃОНОвŃ. ĐĐľŃкОНŃкО ĐťĐľŃ Đ˝Đ°ĐˇĐ°Đ´ на вŃŃŃĐľŃĐľ ŃкОНŃĐ˝ŃŃ Đ˛ŃĐżŃŃкникОв ŃŃаŃĐžŃŃа кНаŃŃа ŃОСдаН ŃаŃ-ĐłŃŃĐżĐżŃ Đ¸ пОпŃĐžŃиН вŃĐľŃ Đ´ĐžĐąĐ°Đ˛Đ¸ŃŃ Đ´ŃŃĐł Đ´ŃŃга в Đ´ŃŃСŃŃ. ĐиОНоŃŃа ĐżŃокŃаŃнО пОПниНа, ŃŃĐž ĐадиП ŃаП дОйавиНŃŃ Đş ноК в Đ´ŃŃСŃŃ, нО Са вŃŃ Đ˛ŃĐľĐźŃ Đ˝Đ¸ ŃĐ°ĐˇŃ ĐľĐš но напиŃаН. ĐовŃŃка в панико ĐżŃОвоНа ŃŃкОК пО ŃвОиП ŃаŃŃŃŃпаннŃĐź вОНОŃаП, ĐżŃŃаŃŃŃ ĐżĐžĐ˝ŃŃŃ, как ПОгНа ŃОвоŃŃиŃŃ Đ˝Đ°ŃŃОНŃкО гНŃĐżŃŃ ĐžŃийкŃ. Đна вОŃНа в ŃвОК нОвŃĐš Đ˝ĐžĐźĐľŃ Đ¸ пОŃŃаŃаНаŃŃ ŃŃпОкОиŃŃŃŃ. ĐаŃоП ĐиОНоŃŃа ŃĐľŃиŃоНŃнО Đ´ĐžŃŃаНа ŃоНоŃОн и вŃŃНа иС ĐłŃŃппОвОгО ŃаŃа вŃĐżŃŃкникОв. ĐĐžŃНо ŃŃОгО Она ŃПониНа ŃĐ˛ĐžŃ Đ¸ĐźŃ Đ˛ ŃĐžŃŃĐľŃŃŃ Ń ĐиОНоŃŃŃ Đ˝Đ° ĐиНиŃ, а ŃĐžŃОгŃаŃĐ¸Ń ĐˇĐ°ĐźĐľĐ˝Đ¸ĐťĐ° на иСОйŃаМонио ŃĐťŃŃаКнОК довŃŃки, кОŃĐžŃОо наŃНа в ĐĐ˝ŃĐľŃноŃĐľ. ТопоŃŃ ĐадиП но ŃСнаоŃ, ĐşŃĐž Она. ĐиОНоŃŃа ŃĐľŃиНа, ŃŃĐž Đ˝ĐľŃ Đ˝ĐľĐžĐąŃ ĐžĐ´Đ¸ĐźĐžŃŃи ŃдаНŃŃŃ ĐľĐłĐž иС Đ´ŃŃСоК. ĐŁŃиŃŃваŃ, ŃŃĐž Đ˝ĐžĐźĐľŃ 1501 ĐąŃĐť СайŃОниŃОван кОПпаниоК, но дОНМнО ĐžŃŃаŃŃŃŃ Đ˝Đ¸ĐşĐ°ĐşĐ¸Ń ŃНодОв, водŃŃĐ¸Ń Đş ноК. ĐŃинŃв ŃŃи ПоŃŃ ĐżŃодОŃŃĐžŃОМнОŃŃи, ĐиОНоŃŃа Đ˝Đ°ĐşĐžĐ˝ĐľŃ ĐžŃНОМиНа ŃоНоŃОн в ŃŃĐžŃĐžĐ˝Ń Đ¸ ŃнОва ŃŃĐ˝ŃНа. ĐŃĐžŃĐ˝ŃНаŃŃ ĐžĐ˝Đ° пОд ĐżŃОнСиŃоНŃĐ˝ŃĐš СвОн ĐąŃдиНŃника над ŃŃ ĐžĐź. ĐĄĐľĐłĐžĐ´Đ˝Ń ĐľĐš Ń ĐźĐľĐ˝ĐľĐ´ĐśĐľŃОП ĐżŃодŃŃĐžŃНО пОКŃи в ĐşĐžĐźĐżĐ°Đ˝Đ¸Ń ÂŤĐŃаŃиŃÂť, ŃŃĐžĐąŃ ĐžĐąŃŃдиŃŃ Đ´ĐžĐżĐžĐťĐ˝Đ¸ŃоНŃнОо ŃинанŃиŃОванио. ĐŃийŃĐťŃнОŃŃŃ ĐżŃОокŃа ŃниСиНаŃŃ Đ˝Đ°ŃŃОНŃкО, ŃŃĐž Он ŃŃаН ŃĐąŃŃĐžŃĐ˝ŃĐź. ĐаŃŃĐ˝ŃŃŃ ŃŃойОваНи вОŃпОНниŃŃ ĐżĐžŃĐľŃи и ĐżŃигŃОСиНи ĐżŃОдаŃŃ ŃĐ˛ĐžŃ Đ´ĐžĐťŃ Đ°ĐşŃиК, ĐľŃНи ŃŃĐž но ĐąŃĐ´ĐľŃ ŃдоНанО. ĐнвоŃŃиŃĐ¸ĐžĐ˝Đ˝ĐžĐźŃ ĐžŃĐ´ĐľĐťŃ ĐżĐžĐ˛ĐľĐˇĐťĐž, ŃŃĐž Ń ĐадиПа ĐąŃĐť ŃвОК ŃаŃŃĐ˝ŃĐš ŃаПОНŃŃ, на кОŃĐžŃОП Они и пОНоŃоНи в ŃŃĐžŃнОП пОŃŃдко в ĐОнинŃĐş. ĐŁĐźŃвŃиŃŃ Đ¸ пОŃиŃŃив СŃĐąŃ, довŃŃка пОŃпоŃиНа в воŃŃийŃĐťŃ ĐžŃĐľĐťŃ Ń Đ´ĐžĐşŃПонŃаПи в ŃŃко. ĐŃкОŃĐľ пОŃНо ŃŃОгО ĐНина ŃĐżŃŃŃиНаŃŃ Đ˛Đ˝Đ¸Đˇ, нодОвОНŃнО ĐżŃОйОŃПОŃав: ÂŤĐиŃиНН ĐżŃĐžĐ´ĐžĐťĐśĐ°ĐľŃ Đ˝Đ°ŃŃаиваŃŃ, ŃŃĐž ĐźŃ Đ˝Đ¸ŃогО но Đ´ĐžĐťĐśĐ˝Ń Đ˛ĐžŃпОНнŃŃŃ, нО Ń ŃŃ ĐžĐ´Đ¸ĐťĐ° в ĐşĐžĐźĐżĐ°Đ˝Đ¸Ń Đ¸ ĐżŃОвоŃиНа дОгОвОŃ. Đа кОпии ĐąŃНО огО иПŃ!Âť ТŃŃ, ĐиŃиНН идŃŃ. ĐŃŃŃĐľ ĐľĐźŃ ĐžĐą ŃŃОП но ŃĐťŃŃаŃŃÂť, - ĐżŃодŃĐżŃодиНа ĐиОНоŃŃа. Đ ŃŃĐžŃ ĐźĐžĐźĐľĐ˝Ń ĐžĐ˝Đ° СаПоŃиНа вŃŃОкОгО ĐźŃĐśŃинŃ, вŃŃ ĐžĐ´ŃŃогО иС НиŃŃа в ОкŃŃМонии ĐłŃŃĐżĐżŃ ĐťŃдоК. ĐŃĐž ĐąŃĐť ĐадиП. ĐĐ˝ ŃПониН ŃŃНкОвŃĐš Ń Đ°ĐťĐ°Ń, в кОŃĐžŃОП ĐąŃĐť вŃĐľŃа воŃĐľŃОП, на Ń ĐžŃĐžŃĐž ŃŃиŃŃĐš ŃŃŃĐ˝ŃĐš кОŃŃŃĐź. ĐгО ĐłŃŃŃŃĐľ ĐąŃОви ĐąŃНи ŃНогка Đ˝Đ°Ń ĐźŃŃонŃ, а ŃОнкио ĐłŃĐąŃ ĐżĐťĐžŃнО ŃМаŃŃ, пОка Он ŃĐťŃŃаН дОкНад ŃвОогО ŃокŃĐľŃаŃŃ. ĐŃĐžŃ ĐžĐ´Ń ĐżĐž воŃŃийŃĐťŃ, ĐадиП даМо но вСгНŃĐ˝ŃĐť на ĐиОНоŃŃŃ. ĐгО Ń ĐžĐťĐžĐ´Đ˝ĐžŃŃŃ ĐąŃНа Ń ĐžŃĐžŃĐž иСвоŃŃна вŃоП в доНОвОП ПиŃĐľ. ĐŃŃаМонио ŃŃОгО ŃĐžŃŃнОгО НиŃа вŃогда ĐžŃŃаваНОŃŃ ŃĐ´ĐľŃМаннŃĐź и вŃŃОкОПоŃĐ˝ŃĐź. ĐадиП ПаНО гОвОŃиН, нО ОднОгО огО ĐżŃиŃŃŃŃŃĐ˛Đ¸Ń ĐąŃНО Đ´ĐžŃŃаŃĐžŃнО, ŃŃĐžĐąŃ ŃоПпоŃаŃŃŃа вОСдŃŃ Đ° вОкŃŃĐł ногО каСаНаŃŃ Đ˝Đ¸ĐśĐľ, ŃоП в ĐžŃŃаНŃнОП пОПоŃонии. ÂŤĐОМо, какОК Мо гОŃпОдин ĐŃОНОв ĐşŃаŃавŃик! - вСвОНнОваннО ĐżŃĐžŃопŃаНа ĐНина, но СаПоŃĐ°Ń ŃвнОгО ŃĐźŃŃĐľĐ˝Đ¸Ń ĐиОНоŃŃŃ. - ĐŁ Đ˝Đ°Ń Ń Đ˝Đ¸Đź Одна ŃаПиНиŃ, нО пОŃĐľĐźŃ ĐźŃ Ńакио ŃаСнŃĐľ? ĐĐš, ĐиОНоŃŃа, ĐżŃиŃĐź! Đ˘Ń ŃĐťŃŃаоŃŃ?Âť ĐНина кОŃĐ˝ŃНаŃŃ ŃŃки ĐиОНоŃŃŃ, вОСвŃаŃĐ°Ń ŃŃ Đ˛ ŃоаНŃнОŃŃŃ. ĐиОНоŃŃа пОŃпоŃна ОпŃŃŃиНа гОНОвŃ, надоŃŃŃ, ŃŃĐž ĐадиП ĐľŃ Đ˝Đľ СаПоŃиН. ĐднакО, кОгда ĐłŃŃппа ŃМо ĐżĐžĐ´Ń ĐžĐ´Đ¸ĐťĐ° Đş вŃŃ ĐžĐ´Ń, Он вдŃŃĐł ŃкаСаН ŃĐ˛ĐžĐľĐźŃ ŃокŃĐľŃаŃŃ: ÂŤĐŃŃŃни, ĐşŃĐž вŃĐľŃа воŃĐľŃОП СаŃоНиНŃŃ Đ˛ Đ˝ĐžĐźĐľŃ 1501Âť. ĐŁŃĐťŃŃав ŃŃи ŃиŃŃŃ, ĐиОНоŃŃа пОŃŃвŃŃвОваНа, ĐąŃĐ´ŃĐž ĐľŃ Đ˝ĐžĐłĐ¸ наНиНиŃŃ ŃвинŃОП. ĐŃ ŃаСŃĐź пОНнОŃŃŃŃ ĐžĐżŃŃŃоН, и Она НиŃŃ ŃĐźŃŃнО ŃŃĐťŃŃаНа вОŃкНиŃанио ĐНинŃ: ÂŤ1501? ТаП Мо вŃĐľŃа нОŃоваНа ĐиОНоŃŃа!Âť ĐŃОПкиК ĐłĐžĐťĐžŃ ĐĐťĐ¸Đ˝Ń ĐżŃивНŃĐş вниПанио вŃĐľŃ , вкНŃŃĐ°Ń ĐадиПа. Đ ŃŃаŃŃŃŃ Đ´ĐťŃ ĐиОНоŃŃŃ, Он ĐąŃŃŃŃĐž пОŃĐľŃŃĐť инŃĐľŃĐľŃ Đ¸ напŃавиНŃŃ Đş двоŃи, ŃНОвнО ниŃогО но ĐżŃОиСОŃНО. Đа ниП пОŃНодОваНа огО ŃвиŃа, и вŃĐľ вПоŃŃĐľ Они пОкинŃНи ĐžŃоНŃ. Đак ŃОНŃкО Они ŃŃНи, ĐНина вОпŃĐžŃиŃоНŃнО пОŃПОŃŃоНа на ĐиОНоŃŃŃ. ÂŤĐŃĐž дОвОНŃнО ŃŃŃаннО, но Ńак Ни? ĐĐžŃĐľĐźŃ ĐłĐžŃпОдин ĐŃОНОв инŃĐľŃĐľŃŃĐľŃŃŃ ŃвОоК кОПнаŃОК?Âť - ОСадаŃонО ŃĐżŃĐžŃиНа Она. ĐиОНоŃŃа ОйНогŃŃннО Đ˛ĐˇĐ´ĐžŃ Đ˝ŃНа и ĐžŃвоŃиНа: ÂŤĐС ПОогО нОПоŃа ĐžŃĐşŃŃваоŃŃŃ Ń ĐžŃĐžŃиК вид. ĐОМоŃ, Он Ń ĐžŃĐľŃ ŃаП ĐžŃŃанОвиŃŃŃŃÂť. ÂŤĐĄĐľŃŃŃСнО?Âť ÂŤĐĐľ СайŃваК, ŃŃĐž Он гоноŃаНŃĐ˝ŃĐš диŃокŃĐžŃ!Âť ĐНина пОМаНа пНоŃаПи. ХНОва ĐиОНоŃŃŃ Đ¸ĐźĐľĐťĐ¸ ŃĐźŃŃĐť, пОŃкОНŃĐşŃ ĐžĐ˝Đ° и ĐадиП ĐżŃинадНоМаНи Đş двŃĐź ŃОвоŃŃоннО ŃаСнŃĐź ПиŃаП, и ĐźĐľĐśĐ´Ń Đ˝Đ¸ĐźĐ¸ ниŃогО но ПОгНО ĐżŃОиСОКŃи. ĐноСапнО довŃŃка СаПоŃНа. Oна ĐąŃŃŃŃĐž ĐżŃОНиŃŃаНа дОкŃПонŃŃ Đ˛ ŃŃĐşĐ°Ń . ЧŃŃŃ!Âť ĐĐľŃĐžŃŃнО, Она ĐžŃŃавиНа кОнŃŃĐ°ĐşŃ Đ˛ нОПоŃĐľ 1501, кОгда пОŃпоŃнО ŃйогаНа...... ...... ЧŃĐž ĐąŃĐ´ĐľŃ Đ´Đ°ĐťŃŃĐľ? ĐОНиŃĐľŃŃвО гНав СдоŃŃ ĐžĐłŃаниŃонО, наМПиŃĐľ на ĐşĐ˝ĐžĐżĐşŃ Đ˝Đ¸ĐśĐľ, ŃŃĐžĐąŃ ŃŃŃанОвиŃŃ ĐżŃиНОМонио и ĐżŃОдОНМиŃŃ ŃŃонио йОНоо ĐˇĐ°Ń Đ˛Đ°ŃŃваŃŃĐ¸Ń ĐłĐťĐ°Đ˛! (ĐŃ ĐąŃĐ´ĐľŃĐľ авŃОПаŃиŃĐľŃки поŃонапŃĐ°Đ˛ĐťĐľĐ˝Ń Đ˝Đ° книгŃ, кОгда ĐžŃĐşŃОоŃĐľ ĐżŃиНОМонио) &4& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.litradnovie.com/14142418-fb_contact- | Love Story City | https://www.facebook.com/100083614308933/ | 19,435 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.litradnovie.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.litradnovie.com/14142418-fb_contact-ruj95_2-0913-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=254141414030583&rawadid=120213055664000752 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463747967_1742982193184263_4233181028934747812_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=PimUAXmMWk8Q7kNvgEjKmZW&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKMRjhcK1FlxYvSS3vUvqMl&oh=00_AYBYLtpWpJQzrxCTqnU486cb6L0mK7RPP2jut0qCARhTAw&oe=67307108 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Love Story City | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,574 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
Read next chapterđ | She signed the divorce papers and left without taking her phone. He checked her phone and got floored at the message: Please come tomorrow for another prenatal care checkup! ============= Chapter 1 Ex-girlfriend Returns Raegan Hayes was a little absent-minded at the moment. All she could think of since this afternoon was the doctor's words. "Congratulations! You are going to be a mom." Suddenly, Mitchel Dixon pinched her arm. His low voice came the next second. "Come back to earth. What are you thinking about?" Mitchel was her husband. They had been married secretly for two years. He was her superior at work, the president of the Dixon Group. Everything had happened so fast. She was newly employed in the company when they unexpectedly got married. At that time, Mitchel's grandfather fell seriously ill. It was then he proposed a fake marriage just to fulfill his grandfather's dying wish. They signed a prenup, agreeing to hide their marriage from the public. Their union could be terminated at any time. It was an unconventional thing to do. However, Raegan only considered herself lucky at that time. Never in a million years did she think she would ever get married to the man she had a crush on for eight years. She delightfully agreed. After their marriage, Mitchel was very busy. He spent most of his time working. Raegan wished she could spend more time with him at home. However, she was rest assured because there hadn't been any rumors or scandals about him with women in the past two years. Except for his mild indifference, Mitchel was a perfect husband. Raegan had mixed feelings as she stared at the medical report. In the end, she decided to tell Mitchel this news. She also wanted to tell him that she hadn't learned about him for the first time two years ago and that she had been crushing on him for many years before then. Just then, Mitchelâs phone rang. He went to the balcony and answered the phone. Raegan checked the time and found that it was already midnight. She felt a little uneasy. Who would call Mitchel at this hour? Mitchel spent a few minutes on the balcony. Thereafter, he returned and changed into formal attire. His handsome face which had a clear outline made him look dignified. He was something to see now. "Don't wait up for me. Good night," he said finally. What? He was on his way out? At this hour? Raegan's grip on the report tightened as she stared at him in disappointment. Unconsciously, she withdrew slightly. After thinking for a while, she blurted out, "It's already so late." Mitchel's fingers froze on his tie. With a faint smile, he pinched her earlobe and said, "Be good, okay? There's something I have to do. Don't wait up." With that, he headed for the door. "Mitchel." Raegan quickly ran and caught up with him. Mitchel turned around and looked at her seriously. "What's the matter?" There was a tinge of coldness to his voice. An icy cloud hung over them as they stared at each other. A little distressed, Raegan asked in a low voice, "I would like to visit my grandma tomorrow. Can you accompany me there?" Her grandmother always wanted to see her. As a result, Raegan wanted to take Mitchel there to assure her grandma they were happy. "Let's talk about it tomorrow, okay?" Without agreeing or declining, Mitchel left in a hurry. Several thoughts were threading Raegan's mind. She couldn't sleep a wink. After tossing and turning for a long time, she went to the kitchen and made herself a warm glass of milk. A few notifications from some online blogs came into her phone. However, she wasn't interested in them. She was about to swipe them away when one of them caught her attention. The familiar name made her click on it. The news read, "Famous designer, Lauren Murray was spotted at the airport with her mysterious boyfriend earlier today." Lauren was wearing a bucket hat. The man's figure was vague, but the outline of his body was enough to show that he was dashing. Raegan zoomed in on the picture. The next second, her heart dropped. Mitchel was the man in the picture! So, he canceled the afternoon meeting just to go pick up his ex-girlfriend from the airport? This realization settled like a boulder in Raegan's gut, rendering her flustered. Her hands trembled. Subconsciously, she dialed Mitchel's number. The dial tone brought her back to her senses. Just as she was about to hang up, the line connected, and a voice came from the other end. "Hello!" It was a particularly gentle woman's voice. Raegan froze for a second and then threw the phone away. She suddenly felt sick in her stomach. Covering her mouth, she ran into the bathroom and threw up in the toilet bowl. The next morning, Raegan went to work on time. Mitchel had tried to get her to stop working after they got married. Stubbornly, she insisted on making her own money. Mitchel didn't kick against her decision, but he asked her to work as his assistant, helping him with the daily chores. The head assistant, Matteo Jenkins was left to take care of the major affairs Mitchel had. Matteo was the only Dixon Group employee who knew about their marriage. Since inception, only male assistants were hired for the president's office. Reagan was the first and only female. Her employment broke the protocol. As a result, other workers couldn't help but wonder if she was involved with Mitchel. It took a while before they realized that Mitchel never gave Raegan special treatment. Strangely, this made them despise her even more. After all, no one would last long in anything while taking advantage of their looks. At this time, one of Raegan's colleagues handed her a document and ordered her to take it to Mitchel's office. Mitchel didn't return home last night. Raegan was so worried that she didn't sleep at all. All she kept thinking about was the woman who answered his phone when she called. What was her relationship with Mitchel? Raegan already knew the answer to that, but she was still in denial. It was difficult for her to come to terms with that fact. Raegan tried to remain calm now. She reasoned that no matter what happened, she deserved a result that would be rewarding for all the years she spent loving Mitchel. This couldn't be all for nothing, right? She pressed the elevator button calmly and went up to the president's office. Before she walked out of the elevator, she smoothed her hair to make sure she looked good. She had arrived at the office, only to see that the door was ajar. A man's voice came. She halted instantly. "Come on, man! Do you have any feelings for Raegan or not?" The voice belonged to Luis Stevens, a childhood friend of Mitchel's. "What do you mean exactly?" Mitchel asked in a cold voice. "You know exactly what I mean!" Luis clicked his tongue impatiently and added, "I think Raegan is a good girl. Isn't she your type?" "Do you want me to hand her over to you?" Mitchel asked carelessly. "You know what, forget it!" The scornful laughter of Luis sounded particularly harsh in Raegan's ears. They were talking about her as if she were an object. Raegan took a deep breath and tightened her grip on the document. Soon, Luis's voice was heard again. "By the way, I saw the gossip news about Lauren's mysterious boyfriend this morning. That was you, right?" "Yes." "Well, well, well! That woman still has you wrapped around her little finger. You always want to please her." Luis sighed and continued to tease Mitchel. "As the old saying goes, absence makes the heart grow fonder. Tell me, did you two..." Their conversation was like a thunder exploding over Raegan's head. Her face turned pale and her body was as cold as ice. The woman was indeed Lauren! Absence made the heart grow fonder! Every word drove a knife into her heart. Several whispering voices filled her head at this time. She suddenly felt light-headed. Her vision became blurry. She held the wall and took a step backward. Suddenly, the door was opened from inside. "Raegan?" Chapter 2 One-sided Love Luis was the one who opened the door. It appeared he was on his way out. Raegan balled her hands, turned to him, and nodded. "Hey, Mr. Stevens!" Without waiting for him to respond to her greeting, she walked past him and entered the office with the document. Mitchel was seated behind a large luxurious desk. In an expensive suit and matching tie, he looked particularly handsome. Raegan noticed it wasn't the same suit he had on when he left home last night. How did he get changed? With her eyes lowered, she swallowed that question and said instead, "Mr. Dixon, this is from the Marketing Department. Please sign it." Mitchel was expressionless as he signed the document at a glance. Raegan walked out the door as soon as he handed the document back to her. Luis was still standing at the threshold. It wasn't until she went out of sight that Luis turned to Mitchel and said in a hushed tone, "Do you think she heard us?" Mitchel's appealing eyes were expressionless at the moment. Obviously, he wasn't paying attention to what Luis was saying. To Mitchel, Raegan had always been docile and never felt jealous of anyone. Her strict obedience was all Mitchel demanded from her in exchange for treating her well. In the elevator. Raegan held her breath just to hold back her tears. Unfortunately, it didn't work. She had thought two years would be enough for Mitchel to realize how much she loved him and reciprocate her love. Now, it turned out that was just a pipe dream. She realized she would always play second fiddle to Lauren, Mitchel's true love. Reagan wiped her tears when the elevator halted. Save for her pale face, she looked normal when the doors opened. She dragged herself to the break room, intending to make herself a cup of tea. Several employees were chatting inside. "Guys, have you heard? Lauren Murray is back." "And who is that?" "Oh, my! You don't know her? Lauren is the heiress of the Murray Group as well as a world-class designer. Most importantly, she's the only girlfriend Mr. Dixon has ever shown off in public. She's his first love!" "Why is her return such a big deal? Isn't it rumored that there is something between Mr. Dixon and Raegan?" "Raegan? She's nothing to Mr. Dixon. Mr. Dixon never admitted that he was dating her. And that is no surprise to me. After all, look at her. She's not even that beautiful. Yet, she behaves as if she's already Mrs. Dixon. What a fool!" Standing at the door, Raegan smiled with self-mockery as she listened to them. It turned out everyone else saw the truth except her. The love was one-sided. "Ha-ha, have you finally woken up from your wild dream, Raegan?" A voice of mockery suddenly came from behind. Raegan turned around to see Tessa Lloyd, Mitchel's cousin, who had always despised her. Tessa must have also heard the employees gossiping. The last thing Raegan wanted to do now was argue with Tessa in the company. She turned to leave, but Tessa blocked her way. With a cup of coffee in her hand, Tessa uttered sarcastically, "Lauren is back now. Do you think Mitchel will still give you any attention?" Raegan said nothing to that. Seconds later, Tessa continued the ridicule. "Maybe itâs time for you to seek out another man, you pathetic fool." Raegan clenched her fists and said coldly, "Ms. Lloyd, if you are interested in that kind of thing, feel free to pursue it yourself." "You..." Raegan's retort made Tessa's face change. The next second, Tessa raised her hand and emptied the cup of coffee on Raegan. Raegan didn't think for a second that Tessa would do something so crazy. She held up her arms just to block the liquid from her face. In no time, the coffee drenched her clothes. Raegan frowned. "What did you do that for? Are you out of your mind?" It was lunch break and many employees were free to watch the drama. Tessa was even more complacent when she saw growing onlookers. She put on a mean-girl look as she said, "What makes you so smug every day, huh? Do you seriously think that others don't know you are just an orphan? The nerve of..." Tessa was silenced by Raeganâs shove. Her jaw dropped to the floor. She had never expected that Raegan, who was so quiet and timid, would shove her. Tessa stuttered, "You... You pushed me? How dare you!" Raegan eyed her and replied, "Yes, I did! It seems you need to be taught simple politeness." Indeed, she lost her parents when she was a child. But that didn't mean she would allow someone to walk over her for it. Wrinkles appeared on Tessa's face as she frowned in anger. As Mitchel's cousin, she was used to being fawned over and respected. This was the first time she had been treated like this. Tessa charged at Raegan like a raging bull, poised to retaliate. This time, Raegan was fully prepared for what was coming. She grabbed Tessa's wrist so that the latter couldn't move another inch. Tessa was shorter than Raegan. As a result, she struggled like an octopus that had one of its tentacles stuck in a fishing trap. Tessa cursed angrily, "How dare you put your hands on me? Who do you think you are?" These harsh words attracted more people to the break room. "That's enough!" Out of the blue, a baritone came from behind. Mitchel had left his office and ran into this hullabaloo. The entire room fell silent. "Mitchel?" Tessa's blood ran cold at the sight of Mitchel. She had always been scared of him. Her mother also warned her against provoking him. But when she remembered that Raegan humiliated her, she put on a pitiful expression and sobbed. "Mitchel, she bullied me." The sunlight from outside fell on Mitchel's handsome face. Raegan felt so grieved all of a sudden, and lowered her head to look at her clothes which were soaked with coffee. Their gaze met in the air. With a deep frown, Mitchel looked at Raegan and said, "Raegan, have you forgotten the rules of the company?" His ruthlessness made Raegan's breathing cease. She couldn't believe her ears. No one dared to make a sound at this moment. Raegan just stood straight there with her slender figure. When she got employed here, Mitchel had told her that the Dixon Group wasn't a place for her to mess around and that he would not tolerate her making any mistakes. Raegan could understand why he took this stand. However, at this moment, she was desperate to know whether Mitchel had heard those hard words Tessa scolded her or he was just pretending not to have heard because he agreed to those words. Was she truly insignificant to him? Scared to death by Mitchel's rage, the crowd soon dispersed. A few employees were bold enough to peep from a distance, unwilling to miss the good show. Mitchel's cold eyes made Raegan shiver from head to toe. Raegan pinched her palm to suppress her emotions as she looked at Tessa. "I'm sorry, Ms. Lloyd. As an employee of the Dixon Group, it was wrong of me to have offended you." Eyeing Raegan, Tessa raised her chin complacently. "Humph! Don't think you'll be let off the hook just by making a simple apology. I don't buy..." "The offence has nothing to do with the company. Personally, I refuse to apologize to you. Now, if you'd excuse me," Raegan chimed in. She then walked past Mitchel without sparing him another look. "You..." Tessa's face turned blue after hearing what Raegan said. Never in her years of being alive had she been so humiliated. She was always the bully, not the victim! The humiliation was so much that scolding Raegan wouldn't appease her anger. Pointing in Raegan's direction, Tessa shouted, "Mitchel, did you hear what that woman just said? She humiliated me, yet she's still so arrogant. Call her back. I have to teach her some manners!" Mitchel, staring at Raegan's thin back, had an ambiguous expression at this moment. "Enough!" he said coldly, raising his hand. As someone who lived and breathed drama and cruelty, Tessa didn't think Mitchel was partial to Raegan just now. She assumed that Mitchel didn't care about Raegan at all. Tessa gritted her teeth and said viciously, "Next time, I'll get someone to teach her a lesson." "Tessa!" Mitchel's tone and squint made it a reproof. Tessa trembled at once. With a somber face, Mitchel said, "I'll only say it once. Forget about what happened here today. Leave Raegan alone." The aura he exuded made her tongue go dry. All the vicious ideas she had in store against Raegan disappeared in an instant. She stammered, "Ok... Okay, got it..." Mitchel cast a cold glance at her and spoke to Matteo. "Irrelevant people wouldn't be allowed in here from today onwards." Without catching the drift, Tessa flattered Mitchel. "Nice call. This is a top company. Not everyone gains access in here." Matteo nodded to Mitchel and then walked over to Tessa. He gestured to the exit. "Ms. Lloyd, this way, please." It wasn't until this moment that Tessa realized that she was the irrelevant person Mitchel just mentioned. She tried to speak to him, but Matteo blocked her way. The security guards then escorted her out. They showed her no mercy. Her struggle was useless. Meanwhile, Raegan got changed when she returned to her office. Her heart was filled with sadness as she thought of how Mitchel looked at her minutes ago. Closing hour soon rolled by. Raegan took her bag and headed for the exit. However, Matteo stopped her. He said, "Mr. Dixon has something urgent to deal with, so he asked me to drive you home." Raegan declined the ride without thinking twice. She was blind before, but now she could see through the situation. In Mitchel's eyes, she was just a nobody. How could Mitchel agree to accompany her to visit her grandmother when he didn't even care about her? Upon arriving at the hospital, Raegan saw that the nurse was about to feed her grandmother dinner. Raegan took the job over and did it by herself. All her life, her grandmother had been living in the countryside, enjoying a quiet life. Everything changed last month when her routine medical checkup showed that she was in need of medical care. Raegan insisted on bringing her to the city for better treatment. Her grandmother wasn't aware of her marriage to Mitchel. Raegan had planned to surprise her today. But as it turned out, that was no longer necessary. Raegan waited for her grandmother to fall asleep before she left. She walked out of the hospital and waited for a taxi. In the distance, a black luxury car pulled into the entrance of the hospital. Raegan's eyes lit up when she saw it. She recognized that car as Mitchel's. Did he come to pick her up? At this moment, she forgot all the pain she had been feeling. Were her thoughts about him all wrong? Did he care for her, contrary to the gossip? The door of the driver's side opened and Mitchel got out. Raegan started walking toward him with her heart brimming with joy. Suddenly, she stopped dead in her tracks. Mitchel had just walked over to the other side and carried a woman out of the car. Worry and compassion were written all over his handsome face. This wiped the smile on Raegan's face. Her heart sank. Chapter 3 Let's Divorce Mitchel's tall and straight figure got closer and closer to Raegan. And then, without saying a word, he strode past Raegan. It was hard to tell if Mitchel saw Raegan or just ignored her. Regardless, Raegan noticed that the woman in his arms was the same one who had been photographed with him yesterday. She was Lauren. Raegan's shoes felt like they were made of lead as she walked away. She lost all awareness of her surroundings. She got into a taxi absentmindedly. Suddenly, the driver uttered, "Ma'am, where to?" Raegan was stunned for a moment. She didn't want to go back to Serenity Villas. It was only a matter of time before that place stopped being her home. After a while, she replied, "Please take me to Crystal Bay." She had purchased an apartment at Crystal Bay after getting married to Mitchel. At the time, she had hopes of bringing her grandmother to the city, so she bought the apartment on mortgage. It wasn't that big, but it had more than enough space for two people. Mitchel didn't understand why she wanted to buy an apartment. He offered to give her a bigger one, but she declined. Looking back now, she realized that buying that apartment was the only wise decision she had ever made in the last two years. When she arrived at the apartment complex, Raegan sat in the park alone, trying to cool herself down. The memories of the past two years were bittersweet. Two years had passed in the blink of an eye even though it was more than seven hundred days and nights. Love could move mountains, they said. Yet, her love didn't move that stone of a man. She finally realized what a fool she had been. She had been making herself a laughingstock in front of everyone. It was already late in the night before Raegan finally decided to go into her apartment. As soon as she stepped out of the elevator, she saw Mitchel standing in front of the door. His sleeves were rolled up casually, and the top buttons of his shirt were undone, which revealed his long neck and part of his collarbone. He was leaning on the wall by the door, his handsome face straight. Raegan froze for a moment. Why was he here? Didn't she see him at the hospital with Lauren? What brought him here? Their eyes met. With his coat draped over his arm and one of his hands in his pocket, Mitchel squinted at her. "Why didn't you answer the phone?" he asked, sounding a little grumpy like someone who hadn't slept in a long time. Raegan took out her phone and saw she had accidentally put it on DND. There were five missed calls from Mitchel. This marked the first time in their two-year marriage. Mitchel blew up her phone because he couldn't find her? Surprising! Before today, she would have been overjoyed by this. People would've thought she won the lottery. But now, she just threw her phone back into her bag, folded her arms, and said in a hoarse voice, "I didn't hear it ring." Mitchel raised his hand to check the time on the watch, and said impatiently, "I've been looking for you for two hours." After arranging everything for Lauren, he returned home to find an empty house. He looked for Raegan everywhere. When he couldn't find her, he asked Matteo to check the surveillance footage of all the roads that led away from the company. He later found out that Raegan went to Crystal Bay without telling him. "Next time, tell me when you are coming here, okay? Let's go home now." After that, Mitchel walked toward the elevator without sparing her another glance. He meant to go back to Serenity Villas. Raegan didn't move an inch. She just stared at his broad back and pondered reluctantly. Would they have a future? Mitchell turned around, only to see that Raegan hadn't taken a single step. He frowned and asked, "Can't you walk? Do you want me to carry you instead?" The light in the corridor illuminated his face, making his side profile almost impeccable. Raegan took a deep breath and said, "Let's divorce." "What do you mean?" Mitchel's voice was cold, and his handsome face changed immediately. "I want to move into my own place. After all, we will be strangers soon." Raegan forced a smile, but her heart was aching as if someone was tearing it apart bit by bit. "We will be strangers?" Mitchel smiled coldly. "Raegan, what do you think our relationship is now?" His questioning left Raegan stunned for a moment. Mitchel had made it very clear to her from the very beginning. This facade of their marriage had happened by mutual agreement. There was no love. In the eyes of others, they were nothing more than just a superior and a subordinate. Mitchel was quite the catch in Ardlens. Many young ladies longed for his love and were even willing to throw themselves at him. His question just now reminded her of that fact. Was he afraid that she wouldn't let him go that easily? If that was the case, he couldn't be more wrong... After biting her lower lip to conceal her bitterness, Raegan said, "I'm sorry, Mr. Dixon. I was giving it too much thought. Anyway, please leave me alone from now on. You don't have to come here again." After saying that, Raegan couldn't help but burst into tears. How could she not be sad when she was cutting ties with the man she had loved for a decade? It was such a long time. Regardless of how difficult it was, she knew it was time to let go. It was high time she stopped being a fool. Strangely, the light in the corridor began flickering. The deathly stare Mitchel was giving Raegan right now made the atmosphere seem like the moment before an attack in a horror movie. Although he understood that Raegan sometimes could throw a tantrum, he felt that she had just crossed the line now. His eyes shone like blazing torches at this moment. But when he saw the tears in her eyes, the rage inside him extinguished in an instant. He said in a low voice, "If this is about what happened between you and Tessa, I..." "No, this isn't about her. Mr. Dixon, please leave now." A lot of things happened between them. And the incident with Tessa didn't come close to any. Raegan felt exhausted. She passed by Mitchel and was about to open the door. Yet, Mitchel was displeased with her stubbornness. He loosened his tie irritably. He then took a step forward and grabbed her wrist. "Stop this, will you?" A second later, he put his arm around her shoulder and pulled her into his arms. He instantly realized that she was burning up like someone who had been set on fire. "You have a fever?" Raegan felt dizzy. She rested her head on his chest weakly. This made the whole situation complicated. Reagan was slow to catch that. When she finally realized that her body was too close to his, she put her hands against his chest and tried to pull back. Before she could escape, Mitchel pulled her back and held her by the waist. With a cold face, he said in a low voice, "Where do you think you are going?" The light flickered again. Out of the blue, Mitchel lifted her up. He then headed for the elevator. In a daze, Raegan asked softly, "What are you doing?" "What does it look like I am doing?" Mitchel remarked. "Taking you to the hospital, of course." "No way!" Raegan cried out in surprise and seemed to regain more strength. Mitchel might find out about her condition if they went to the hospital. Raegan struggled to get out of Mitchel's arms. However, his tight grip made her efforts fruitless. "Don't be so stubborn. You are sick, so you must see the doctor," Mitchel said firmly. He walked to the elevator with her in his arms. At this moment, Raegan's heart was thumping so hard that it could jump out of her chest. She flailed in protest. "Put me down! I don't want to go to the hospital!" &32& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/46526322-fb_contact-e | Lime novel | https://www.facebook.com/100090847180115/ | 682 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | IMAGE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/46526322-fb_contact-enj57-1125-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=791750052879575&rawadid=120213973794340758 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465233210_1622425328696110_1137095839053308023_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=zTf8-Af0hMkQ7kNvgF-kbRt&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKMRjhcK1FlxYvSS3vUvqMl&oh=00_AYD12UA0qxOXug0E8L02kq6nD_BfxCQRQYwk5Bx5KG78Aw&oe=673077A7 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Lime novel | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,572 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
Continuer la lecture | Après trois ans de mariage, son mari rentrait rarement Ă la maison. Le seul moment d'intimitĂŠ partagĂŠ ĂŠtait pour complaire aux aĂŽnĂŠs. Le jour de l'accouchement difficile, il est parti Ă l'ĂŠtranger en avion privĂŠ avec sa maĂŽtresse. DĂŠvastĂŠe, elle a dĂŠcidĂŠ de divorcer! ===== Joelle Miller a consultĂŠ le compte Twitter de Rebecca Lloyd, ĂŠtudiant chaque vidĂŠo avec une attention particulière, ĂŠtait impatiente de voir le visage du petit ami de Rebecca. Rebecca, la fille des clips, dĂŠgageait une aura douce et dĂŠlicate dans sa simple robe blanche. Elle n'ĂŠtait pas très belle, mais elle dĂŠgageait une simplicitĂŠ saine et son sourire ĂŠtait vraiment charmant. Elle a dĂŠcouvert que pendant les jours cruciaux, la veille de NoĂŤl, la Saint-Valentin et mĂŞme l'anniversaire de Joelle, Rebecca ĂŠtait avec Adrian Miller, le soi-disant mari de Joelle, qui avait disparu de tous les ĂŠvĂŠnements importants au cours des trois dernières annĂŠes. Les rĂŠcits joyeux de Rebecca et les bribes de sa vie avec son petit ami suffisaient parfaitement Ă plonger Joelle dans la morositĂŠ. ÂŤ Est-ce que tu vois ça? Il garde la tranche de pastèque la plus juteuse rien que pour moi. Âť ÂŤ MĂŞme en rentrant tard, il n'oublie jamais de m'apporter un petit quelque chose. Âť ÂŤ Et regarde ça, quelle surprise!Il est allĂŠ chercher un porte-bonheur pour moi Ă l'ĂŠglise. Âť ...... Le nom d'utilisateur du compte ĂŠtait ÂŤ Compte Ă Rebours Ă la Mort Âť, le seul compte que Joelle suivait. Au moment oĂš elle allait rĂŠflĂŠchir Ă ce nom inquiĂŠtant, la porte de la salle de bains s'est ouverte. Dans la pièce faiblement ĂŠclairĂŠe, Adrian est apparu. Des gouttes d'eau coulaient de ses cheveux. MalgrĂŠ la lumière tamisĂŠe, ses traits frappants n'ĂŠtaient pas altĂŠrĂŠs. Joelle a instinctivement ĂŠteint son tĂŠlĂŠphone et l'a regardĂŠ, perdue dans ses pensĂŠes. Cela faisait une ĂŠternitĂŠ qu'elle n'avait pas vu Adrian. Ce soir, il ĂŠtait lĂ bien malgrĂŠ lui. Sa grand-mère, Irene Miller, ĂŠtait malade et cherchait dĂŠsespĂŠrĂŠment un arrière-petit-enfant, ce qui obligeait le jeune homme Ă revenir. Sans cela, il ne serait peut-ĂŞtre jamais revenu. Au cours de leurs trois annĂŠes de mariage, Adrian rentrait rarement Ă la maison et passait le plus clair de son temps dans les Villas d'Oak. Il ĂŠtait de notoriĂŠtĂŠ publique qu'il n'aimait pas Joelle. Elle se sentait prise au piège d'un mariage qui n'existait que de nom. ÂŤ Je te donne une seule chance. Que tu tombes e**einte ou non est entre les mains du destin Âť, a dĂŠclarĂŠ Adrian, sa voix rĂŠsonnante et profonde. Qu'insinuait-il? Avant que Joelle ne puisse rĂŠflĂŠchir davantage, Adrian lui a saisi la cheville et l'a tirĂŠe vers lui. Joelle a pâli face Ă sa cruautĂŠ, son corps s'ĂŠtant crispĂŠ sous l'effet de la peur. ÂŤ Adrian!ArrĂŞte, je ne veux pas... Âť Ses paroles ont ĂŠtĂŠ interrompues par ses propres luttes frĂŠnĂŠtiques. Se retrouver dans une telle situation avec l'homme qu'elle aimait la remplissait d'humiliation et de terreur. Le rictus d'Adrian a traversĂŠ l'air. ÂŤ Tu as osĂŠ me d*oguer une fois, tu aurais dĂť voir venir ce jour. Tu n'as qu'Ă l'endurer. Âť Ă ses mots durs, les yeux de Joelle se sont remplis de larmes, ses cils s'agitant comme des papillons blessĂŠs. Elle a levĂŠ les yeux vers son visage sĂŠvère, la voix tremblante. ÂŤ Les choses ne sont pas ce que vous pensez...Âť Sa protestation a ĂŠtĂŠ interrompue. Sa rĂŠsistance s'affaiblissant tandis que le dĂŠsespoir prenait le dessus. Elle est restĂŠe allongĂŠe, souhaitant oublier tout ce qui se passait. ÂŤ Tu as appris qu'il est bien plus intĂŠressant de jouer les durs Ă cuire que de rester allongĂŠ comme un poisson mort Âť, a-t-il ĂŠructĂŠ, la voix teintĂŠe de mĂŠchancetĂŠ. Après sa douche, il est parti sans un regard en arrière. Avant et après, Il prenait des douches rituelles comme si elle ĂŠtait une tache sur sa conscience. Joelle avait du mal Ă comprendre le rĂ´le qu'elle jouait dans la vie d'Adrian. Ătait-elle un simple jouet pour? Ou un outil satisfaire les attentes de sa famille en matière d'hĂŠritier? La fenĂŞtre ĂŠtait grandement ouverte, laissant entrer un vent froid et mordant. Joelle a frissonnĂŠ, resserrant la couverture autour d'elle. Ce n'ĂŠtait pas seulement le froid qui la faisait trembler. Elle avait l'impression que son cĹur avait ĂŠtĂŠ dĂŠchirĂŠ, qu'un vent glacial s'ĂŠtait engouffrĂŠ dans sa plaie ouverte. L'homme qu'elle aimait tant depuis près de huit ans lui ĂŠtait dĂŠsormais ĂŠtranger. Trois ans plus tĂ´t, lors d'un somptueux banquet organisĂŠ par la famille Miller, Joelle avait trop bu. Ă son rĂŠveil, elle s'ĂŠtait avec Adrian. Avant qu'elle n'ait pu reprendre ses esprits, son frère et plusieurs membres de la famille Miller avaient fait irruption. Ce qui avait ĂŠtĂŠ fait ĂŠtait irrĂŠversible. La grand-mère d'Adrian avait pris les rĂŞnes et avait arrangĂŠ leur mariage. Pendant tout ce temps, Adrian ĂŠtait persuadĂŠ que Joelle le piĂŠger. Joelle avait dĂŠjĂ ĂŠtĂŠ dĂŠconcertĂŠe par la profonde animositĂŠ d'Adrian, mĂŞme s'il croyait qu'elle l'avait d**guĂŠ. Après tout, ils avaient tous les deux grandi ensemble. Mais Ă prĂŠsent, elle a compris. Aux yeux d'Adrian, elle n'ĂŠtait rien d'autre que l'infâme femme qui avait sabotĂŠ sa relation avec Rebecca. Elle se surprenait souvent Ă penser Ă un Adrian qui semblait parfait dans les vidĂŠos de Rebecca, toujours si doux et attentif. Elle s'est rendu compte qu'il ne lui montrerait probablement jamais la mĂŞme tendresse. Finalement, Joelle a succombĂŠ Ă une crise de sanglots. Cette nuit-lĂ , son sommeil a ĂŠtĂŠ agitĂŠ et perturbĂŠ. Dans les dernières heures, elle se surprenait Ă rĂŞver de l'ĂŠpoque oĂš Adrian et elle n'ĂŠtaient pas en conflit. RĂŠveillĂŠe par son sommeil agitĂŠ, Joelle s'est levĂŠe inhabituellement tĂ´t. Après s'ĂŞtre rafraĂŽchie, elle a enfilĂŠ une tenue dĂŠcontractĂŠe et s'est rendue au rez-de-chaussĂŠe. Leah Jenkins, la femme de chambre de longue date, a remarquĂŠ la descente de Joelle et s'est empressĂŠe de mettre la table pour le petit-dĂŠjeuner, connaissant toutes ses prĂŠfĂŠrences alimentaires. Joelle a pris son temps, mangeant lentement et de manière dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠe. ÂŤ Mme Miller, pourquoi n'avez-vous pas convaincu M. Miller de rester la nuit dernière? Ce n'est pas souvent qu'il rentre Ă la maison Âť, a commentĂŠ Leah, son ton reflĂŠtant la sympathie qu'elle ĂŠprouvait Ă l'ĂŠgard de Joelle. Leah ĂŠtait au service de la famille Miller depuis de nombreuses annĂŠes, et avait vu Joelle et Adrian passer du statut d'amis d'enfance Ă celui d'ennemis. Une pointe de gĂŞne a brièvement traversĂŠ les traits de Joelle pour ensuite ĂŞtre masquĂŠe par un sourire serein. ÂŤ J'ai essayĂŠ, mais il a refusĂŠ Âť, a-t-elle rĂŠpondu. Il avait le cĹur ailleurs. Ses sentiments se portaient sur les Villas d'Oak, oĂš vivait celle qu'il chĂŠrissait vraiment. Leah a hĂŠsitĂŠ avant de reprendre la parole, le ton prudent. ÂŤ C'est peut-ĂŞtre parce que M. Miller est très impliquĂŠ dans l'entreprise. La gestion d'une entreprise aussi importante lui prend beaucoup de temps. Âť Après avoir ĂŠtĂŠ rĂŠaffectĂŠe aux soins de Joelle trois ans plus tĂ´t, Leah en ĂŠtait venue Ă comprendre les nuances de ce mariage mieux que quiconque. Sa perspicacitĂŠ s'accompagnait d'une sympathie sincère pour Joelle. Les cils de la jeune femme frĂŠmissaient pendant qu'elle grignotait sa tartine, ses yeux larmoyant lĂŠgèrement sous le coup de l'ĂŠmotion. Oui, Adrian ĂŠtait très occupĂŠ, mais il prenait toujours le temps de s'occuper de Rebecca. Il frĂŠquentait la CathĂŠdrale du Salut pour lui demander un charme de bĂŠnĂŠdiction. MalgrĂŠ son emploi du temps chargĂŠ, il ne ratait jamais les vacances avec elle. Ă ce moment-lĂ , le tĂŠlĂŠphone de Joelle a rompu le silence. Alors que Leah quittait la salle Ă manger, Joelle a dĂŠcrochĂŠ l'appel de sa meilleure amie, Katherine Nash. ÂŤ Katherine, je veux divorcer Âť, a dit Joelle d'une voix rauque. Chapitre 2 Ătre dĂŠsormais condamnĂŠe dĂŠfinitivement Joelle a pris la dĂŠcision de divorcer. Il n'y avait aucune raison de faire traĂŽner les choses plus longtemps. Après un moment de silence stupĂŠfait, Katherine a ĂŠclatĂŠ d'un rire strident. ÂŤ Tu vas avoir la moitiĂŠ des biens d'Adrian? Oh, mon Dieu!Joelle, tu vas devenir milliardaire!Âť ÂŤ Je ne peux pas. Âť En effet, Joelle avait signĂŠ un accord lorsqu'elle et Adrian s'ĂŠtaient mariĂŠs. S'ils divorçaient, elle n'aurait rien. ÂŤ Alors pourquoi tu veux divorcer, bon sang? Continue Ă ĂŞtre sa femme!Âť Joelle se souvenait de la rudesse d'Adrian la nuit prĂŠcĂŠdente et de l'humiliation qui s'en ĂŠtait suivie. Par le passĂŠ, elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ si naĂŻve, croyant que son amour pour Adrian pouvait l'aider Ă supporter n'importe quelle ĂŠpreuve. Mais aujourd'hui, en regardant en arrière, elle s'est rendu compte Ă quel point elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ stupide. Adrian l'aimait-il davantage Ă cause de la souffrance? La rĂŠponse ĂŠtait tout simplement non. Un homme qui l'aimait vraiment ne l'aurait jamais laissĂŠe souffrir. Joelle s'est moquĂŠe d'elle-mĂŞme et a changĂŠ de sujet. ÂŤ Au fait, tu te souviens du service que je t'ai demandĂŠ la dernière fois? Âť ÂŤ Oui. J'allais t'en parler. Tu m'as demandĂŠ d'ĂŞtre Ă l'affĂťt d'un emploi, et j'ai quelque chose pour toi. Tu apprendras Ă jouer du violon Ă un ĂŠlève, mais je dois dire que ce sera un gaspillage de ton talent. Âť ÂŤ Ce n'est pas grave Âť, a rĂŠpondu Joelle avec un lĂŠger sourire. ÂŤ Ce n'est pas du tout un gâchis. J'ai ĂŠtĂŠ femme au foyer pendant trois ans. Il suffit que quelqu'un veuille bien m'embaucher. Âť ÂŤ En quoi ce n'est pas un gâchis? Tu ĂŠtais si près de faire partie d'un orchestre international. Si tu ne t'ĂŠtais pas mariĂŠe... Âť, s'est interrompue Katherine, se sentant indignĂŠe pour son amie. Après son mariage, Joelle n'avait mĂŞme plus le droit de travailler. Ces familles riches s'accrochaient Ă des règles aussi dĂŠsuètes. Toute cette situation ĂŠtait ridicule. Trois ans plus tĂ´t, la carrière de violoniste de Joelle ĂŠtait en plein essor. Cependant, les traditions strictes de la famille Miller lui interdisaient de jouer en public. Le premier jour de son mariage, la mère d'Adrian lui avait bien dit : ÂŤ Tu n'as pas besoin de travailler. Adrian subviendra Ă tes besoins. Ton travail consistera Ă donner naissance Ă ses enfants et Ă prendre soin de ton mari. Âť Après son appel avec Katherine, Joelle est montĂŠe Ă l'ĂŠtage et a rĂŠcupĂŠrĂŠ son violon, longtemps nĂŠgligĂŠ, dans le bureau. C'ĂŠtait un cadeau spĂŠcial de son père pour son dix-huitième anniversaire. Tragiquement, peu de temps après l'avoir reçu, son père avait ĂŠtĂŠ victime d'une attaque cĂŠrĂŠbrale et ĂŠtait tombĂŠ dans le coma. Son frère aĂŽnĂŠ s'ĂŠtait chargĂŠ de subvenir aux besoins de la famille. Il l'avait laissĂŠe poursuivre son rĂŞve de jouer du violon sans s'inquiĂŠter. Tout en se remĂŠmorant le passĂŠ, Joelle a tirĂŠ l'archet sur les cordes. Des annĂŠes en arrière, un accident l'avait blessĂŠe au poignet et elle n'avait plus jouĂŠ depuis ce temps. Aujourd'hui, alors qu'elle jouait, une douleur aiguĂŤ lui a traversĂŠ le poignet, mais elle a persistĂŠ. Elle s'est appuyĂŠe sur sa mĂŠmoire musculaire pour jouer un court morceau. Ă la fin, elle a ĂŠclatĂŠ d'un rire amer. Le son ĂŠtait terrible. Juste Ă ce moment-lĂ , elle a entendu la voix de Leah Ă la porte, remplie de surprise et de joie. ÂŤ Monsieur, vous ĂŞtes rentrĂŠ!Âť Leah ĂŠtait intĂŠrieurement contente de voir Adrian. Son retour Ă la maison devait signifier qu'il tenait toujours Ă Joelle. Si Joelle lui disait quelque chose de gentil, leur relation pourrait peut-ĂŞtre s'amĂŠliorer. Pendant ce temps, Joelle ĂŠtait surprise. Adrian rentrait rarement Ă la maison dans la journĂŠe. Elle venait de poser son violon lorsque la porte s'est ouverte. Adrian se tenait dans l'embrasure de la porte, sa grande taille imposante. Les sourcils froncĂŠs, il l'a regardĂŠe. Il se souvenait que Joelle avait appris Ă jouer du violon lorsqu'elle ĂŠtait enfant et qu'elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ fĂŠlicitĂŠe pour son talent par un professeur renommĂŠ. Mais pour une raison ou une autre, elle avait cessĂŠ de jouer. Ayant ĂŠcoutĂŠ de l'extĂŠrieur tout Ă l'heure, il avait trouvĂŠ son jeu mĂŠdiocre. Comment pourrait-on avoir louĂŠ son talent? Joelle lui a jetĂŠ un coup d'Ĺil et a baissĂŠ la tĂŞte pour replacer le violon dans son ĂŠtui. Elle a alors demandĂŠ Ă voix basse : ÂŤ Qu'est-ce qui t'amène ici? Tu as besoin de quelque chose? Âť ÂŤ Je suis venu chercher quelque chose et te rappeler que nous devons rendre visite Ă grand-mère demain Âť, a rĂŠpondu Adrian d'un ton froid. Rendre visite Ă sa grand-mère au moins une fois par mois ĂŠtait une obligation familiale. Demain, c'ĂŠtait ce jour-lĂ . Sans cette obligation, Adrian ne serait pas du tout revenu. Si Joelle et lui ne se prĂŠsentaient pas ensemble, Irene serait contrariĂŠe. Joelle a souri avec amertume. Elle se souvenait des principes de la famille Miller mieux qu'Adrian et les avait toujours respectĂŠs. MĂŞme Irene, toujours aussi stricte, ne pouvait pas lui reprocher quoi que ce soit. ÂŤ Je n'ai pas oubliĂŠ. Je suis soulagĂŠe de savoir que tu ne l'as pas oubliĂŠ non plus Âť, a rĂŠpondu Joelle. Il y avait dans son ton une pointe d'accusation qui faisait ricaner Adrian. L'espace d'un instant, il a ressenti une colère qui couvait en lui. Sans un mot de plus, il s'est dirigĂŠ directement vers la garde-robe pour y chercher quelque chose. MĂŞme s'il ne rentrait que rarement Ă la maison, Joelle entretenait mĂŠticuleusement sa garde-robe, avec des vĂŞtements lavĂŠs, repassĂŠs et bien rangĂŠs. Joelle avait l'impression que son rĂ´le se rĂŠduisait aux tâches mĂŠnagères, ce que Leah pouvait ĂŠgalement faire. Son seul avantage, peut-ĂŞtre, ĂŠtait qu'elle ĂŠtait plus jeune et plus jolie que Leah. Ses yeux ont suivi les mouvements d'Adrian. L'annulaire de celui-ci ĂŠtait nu ; il n'y avait pas d'alliance. Une vive douleur lui a traversĂŠ le cĹur. ÂŤ Adrian, divorçons Âť, a dit soudain Joelle, la voix aussi douce qu'une brise. Prononcer ces mots l'a vidĂŠe de toutes ses forces, mais elle a senti un ĂŠtrange soulagement l'envahir. Adrian s'est retournĂŠ et l'a regardĂŠe avec un sourire moqueur. ÂŤ RĂŠflĂŠchis bien avant de parler. La famille Watson est dĂŠsormais condamnĂŠe dĂŠfinitivement. Sans mon soutien, comptes-tu dormir dans la rue avec ton frère après le divorce? Âť Depuis la chute de la famille Watson, Joelle ĂŠtait passĂŠe du statut de fille choyĂŠe Ă celui de Mme Miller ridiculisĂŠe. La famille Miller la dĂŠtestait et la considĂŠrait comme si elle et son frère ĂŠtaient des sangsues dont ils ne pouvaient se dĂŠbarrasser. MĂŞme ses moments d'intimitĂŠ avec Adrian lui donnaient l'impression d'ĂŞtre dĂŠgradĂŠe. Joelle s'est mordu la lèvre et s'est redressĂŠe. ÂŤ J'ai dĂŠjĂ louĂŠ un appartement. MĂŞme si je finissais par dormir dans la rue, ce serait de ma faute. Âť Tout ce qu'elle voulait, c'ĂŠtait qu'Adrian la respecte, mais trois ans de captivitĂŠ avaient usĂŠ sa fiertĂŠ et sa dignitĂŠ. ÂŤ Et oĂš as-tu trouvĂŠ l'argent pour louer un appartement? Si tu voulais tant ĂŞtre indĂŠpendante, tu n'aurais pas dĂť dĂŠpenser un seul centime de la famille Miller. Âť Adrian, dos Ă Joelle, a retrouvĂŠ l'alliance perdue dans un interstice et l'a tenue dans sa paume. Joelle n'a rien remarquĂŠ. Les paroles qu'il prononçait la laissaient de marbre. Oui, elle avait dĂŠpensĂŠ ses maigres ĂŠconomies pour louer l'appartement. Mais depuis qu'elle ĂŠtait mariĂŠe Ă Adrien, ce qui ĂŠtait Ă elle n'ĂŠtait-il pas aussi Ă lui? De plus, le soutien financier qu'Adrian avait apportĂŠ Ă la famille Watson au fil des ans reprĂŠsentait une somme importante. Joelle avait toujours dĂŠtestĂŠ l'idĂŠe de devoir quoi que ce soit Ă Adrian, mais sa dette envers lui ĂŠtait la plus importante. S'ils divorçaient, il cesserait probablement tout soutien financier Ă la famille Watson. Voulait-il dire qu'elle devrait quitter le mariage les mains vides? Alors qu'Adrian se retournait pour partir, Joelle l'a interpellĂŠ, sa dignitĂŠ Ă peine intacte. ÂŤ Je suis lĂŠgalement habilitĂŠe Ă contracter ce mariage et j'ai un droit lĂŠgitime sur ce qui est censĂŠ m'appartenir. Mais ne t'inquiète pas, je ne te demanderai pas grand-chose, juste ce qu'il faut pour aider le Groupe Watson Ă traverser cette crise. Âť Adrian s'est figĂŠ, ses traits s'ĂŠtant affinĂŠs. Ses lèvres se sont plissĂŠes en une fine ligne et sa mâchoire s'est serrĂŠe. C'ĂŠtaient des signes ĂŠvidents de sa colère naissante. MĂŞme si Joelle s'ĂŠtait mentalement prĂŠparĂŠe, elle n'avait pas pu rĂŠsister Ă l'intensitĂŠ de sa rage. Chaque instant passĂŠ sous le regard sĂŠvère du jeune homme intensifiait son angoisse. Ă ce moment-lĂ , le tĂŠlĂŠphone d'Adrian a sonnĂŠ. Il l'a sorti de sa poche et a commencĂŠ Ă s'ĂŠloigner. ÂŤ Adrian!Âť Chapitre 3 Je ferai toujours bonne figure La frustration d'Adrian crĂŠpitait comme de l'ĂŠlectricitĂŠ statique dans l'air. ÂŤ Si ton frère a besoin d'argent, dis-lui d'aller directement au Groupe Miller. Âť ÂŤ Ce n'est pas de ça qu'il s'agit!Âť, a rĂŠtorquĂŠ Joelle. Il ne l'a pas comprise du tout. Joelle l'a poursuivi Ă toute allure, le cĹur battant d'urgence. ÂŤ Adrian, je veux divorcer!Âť Ă ces mots, Adrian s'est arrĂŞtĂŠ et a tournĂŠ la tĂŞte ; le tĂŠlĂŠphone qu'il tenait Ă la main s'est tu lui aussi. Du haut de son un mètre quatre-vingt-dix, Adrian dominait pysiquement Joelle. Il avait un regard froid et lorsqu'il a parlĂŠ, sa voix ĂŠtait empreinte de moquerie. ÂŤ Joelle, tu ne peux pas trouver un meilleur jeu que ces incessantes discussions? Si tu veux vraiment divorcer, pourquoi ne pas le dire toi-mĂŞme Ă grand-mère? Sinon, que je n'entende plus jamais ce mot de ta bouche!Âť La porte s'est refermĂŠe derrière lui, le bruit de la fin rĂŠsonnant. Joelle s'est adossĂŠe au mur, ses jambes se dĂŠrobant sous elle jusqu'Ă ce qu'elle glisse sur le sol. Un rire amer s'est ĂŠchappĂŠ de ses lèvres. Leur mariage avait ĂŠtĂŠ arrangĂŠ par Irene. Adrian y avait ĂŠtĂŠ forcĂŠ, et Joelle le savait très bien. Si elle voulait vraiment divorcer, elle savait que parler Ă Irene serait la solution la plus efficace. Mais une petite partie stupide d'elle-mĂŞme s'ĂŠtait agrippĂŠe Ă l'espoir qu'Adrian et elle formaient un vrai couple. Elle avait donc abordĂŠ le sujet avec lui en premier car elle le considĂŠrait comme son mari. Mais elle avait oubliĂŠ un dĂŠtail crucial ; Adrian n'avait jamais voulu se marier avec elle. Son refus avait ĂŠtĂŠ manifeste dès le dĂŠbut, mĂŞme si elle avait essayĂŠ de l'ignorer. Les derniers mots qu'il lui avait adressĂŠs n'ĂŠtaient pas seulement dĂŠdaigneux, mais c'ĂŠtait un ordre. Si elle ĂŠtait sĂŠrieuse, elle devait affronter Irene elle-mĂŞme. Ainsi, après avoir pris une douche, Joelle s'est habillĂŠe de vĂŞtements neufs et s'est prĂŠparĂŠe Ă rendre visite Ă Irene. Irene ĂŠtait une femme stricte, autoritaire et crainte par toute la famille. Elle rĂŠgnait d'une main de fer et la dĂŠsobĂŠissance n'ĂŠtait pas tolĂŠrĂŠe. Mais Joelle partageait un lien unique avec elle. Si Joelle avait acceptĂŠ d'ĂŠpouser Adrian, c'ĂŠtait en partie pour rĂŠpondre aux attentes d'Irene. Elle avait voulu s'occuper d'Adrian, construire un foyer et faire en sorte qu'Irene puisse mourir sans regret. Mais Ă prĂŠsent, elle ne pouvait plus tenir plus longtemps. Regarder Adrian prodiguer son attention Ă une autre femme emplissait Joelle d'une vague d'amertume qui menaçait de la consumer. Elle savait bien qu'Adrian ne l'aimait pas. Il ne l'avait jamais aimĂŠe et ne l'aimerait jamais ! Alors qu'elle ĂŠtait sur le point de partir, son tĂŠlĂŠphone a sonnĂŠ. C'ĂŠtait son frère, Shawn Watson, qui l'appelait. ÂŤ Shawn? Qu'est-ce qu'il y a? Âť ÂŤ Mme Miller!Âť C'ĂŠtait l'assistant de Shawn, avec une voix paniquĂŠe, quelque chose que Joelle n'avait jamais entendu auparavant. Elle a frissonnĂŠ et a serrĂŠ le tĂŠlĂŠphone plus fort alors qu'elle se tenait au bas de l'escalier. ÂŤ OĂš est Shawn? Que lui est-il arrivĂŠ? Âť ÂŤ Hier soir, M. Watson a assistĂŠ Ă une rĂŠunion d'affaires au cours de laquelle on l'a poussĂŠ Ă b*ire trop. Il ĂŠtait censĂŠ rentrer chez lui, mais Erick Lloyd a insistĂŠ pour l'emmener dans une station thermale. Âť Joelle s'est figĂŠe, la fureur dĂŠferlant. ÂŤ Erick ne savait pas que cela pouvait le tuer? Âť ÂŤ Erick est un vĂŠritable poison!Il a toujours cherchĂŠ Ă se faire remarquer depuis que son père et son frère sont devenus les chauffeurs de la famille Miller. Mme Miller, vous devez venir rapidement!M. Watson est toujours au bloc opĂŠratoire, et les mĂŠdecins ont ĂŠmis deux avis d'ĂŠtat critique. Je n'ai pas pu tenir plus longtemps avant de vous appeler!Âť Sa voix s'est brisĂŠe alors qu'il ĂŠtait au bord des larmes. Joelle savait qu'il ne l'appellerait pas si la situation n'ĂŠtait pas vraiment dĂŠsespĂŠrĂŠe. Shawn l'avait toujours protĂŠgĂŠe des mauvaises nouvelles, peu importe les circonstances. Si son assistant ĂŠtait Ă ce point ĂŠbranlĂŠ, la vie de Shawn ĂŠtait sans doute au bord de l'abĂŽme. Joelle avait l'impression que le monde se refermait sur elle, sa voix s'ĂŠtranglant dans sa gorge. Elle a manquĂŠ la dernière marche et a fait une chute brutale, sa cheville se tordant brusquement. La douleur fulgurante l'a ramenĂŠe Ă la rĂŠalitĂŠ, et les larmes lui sont montĂŠes aux yeux. ÂŤ Oh non!Mme Miller, comment avez-vous pu ne pas faire attention Ă ce que vous faisiez? Âť Leah s'est prĂŠcipitĂŠe et a aidĂŠ Joelle Ă se relever. Joelle s'est agrippĂŠe au bras de Leah, sa vision ĂŠtant brouillĂŠe par les larmes. Elle a essayĂŠ de parler, mais les mots sont sortis ĂŠtouffĂŠs et brisĂŠs entre les sanglots. ÂŤ Mon frère... Je dois le voir Ă l'hĂ´pital!Âť Sentant l'urgence dans sa voix, Leah n'a pas hĂŠsitĂŠ. ÂŤ Très bien, ne vous inquiĂŠtez pas. Je vais demander au chauffeur de vous y emmener tout de suite!Âť Leah ĂŠtait une femme de mĂŠnage expĂŠrimentĂŠe et fiable qui travaillait pour la famille Miller depuis des annĂŠes. En moins de cinq minutes, la voiture est arrivĂŠe devant la villa. Alors que Joelle s'apprĂŞtait Ă monter dans la voiture, elle s'est tournĂŠe vers Leah. ÂŤ S'il te plaĂŽt, n'en parle pas Ă Irene. Je ne veux pas l'inquiĂŠter. Âť Le cĹur de Leah s'est adouci aux paroles de la jeune femme. MĂŞme dans son ĂŠtat pâle et baignĂŠ de larmes, Joelle pensait au bien-ĂŞtre d'Irene. Quelle fille rare et remarquable ! ÂŤ Ne vous inquiĂŠtez pas, Mme Miller. Je sais ce qu'il faut faire. Allez voir votre frère. Âť Lorsque Joelle est arrivĂŠe Ă l'hĂ´pital, Shawn venait tout juste d'ĂŞtre sorti du bloc opĂŠratoire. Voyant Shawn branchĂŠ Ă des tubes et des fils, l'assistant s'est presque effondrĂŠ sur le sol. En s'approchant, Joelle l'a trouvĂŠ agenouillĂŠ contre le mur en train de prier, les yeux injectĂŠs de sang et creux. Elle s'est abstenue de lui reprocher de ne pas avoir mieux protĂŠgĂŠ Shawn. Ils auraient le temps d'en reparler plus tard. Une fois l'ĂŠtat de Shawn stabilisĂŠ, Joelle a tirĂŠ son assistant Ă part. ÂŤ Raconte-moi tout ce qui s'est passĂŠ. Âť L'assistant a hĂŠsitĂŠ, les traits tirĂŠs par l'inquiĂŠtude. ÂŤ Mme Miller, M. Watson nous a demandĂŠ de ne pas vous impliquer dans les affaires. Âť ÂŤ C'est une question de vie ou de mort. Penses-tu encore que me laisser dans l'ignorance est une option? Âť La patience de Joelle a craquĂŠ, et elle s'est retournĂŠe pour s'ĂŠloigner. ÂŤ Mme Miller, c'est inutile. Âť La voix de l'assistant ĂŠtait lourde de dĂŠsespoir. ÂŤ Depuis le dĂŠcès de votre père, le Groupe Watson repose entièrement sur les ĂŠpaules de M. Watson. Il s'est battu pour maintenir la dignitĂŠ de la famille afin que votre vie au sein de la famille Miller soit plus facile. Âť Pendant trois ans, Shawn s'est battu vaillamment pour maintenir la famille Ă flot. Sans le soutien financier d'Adrian, leurs efforts se seraient effondrĂŠs depuis longtemps. Le souhait le plus profond de Shawn ĂŠtait que Joelle vive confortablement, mais malgrĂŠ ses efforts acharnĂŠs, il n'a jamais pu lui faire gagner le respect qu'elle mĂŠritait de la part de son mari. Peu importe les sacrifices de Shawn, Joelle ĂŠtait toujours mĂŠprisĂŠe dans la famille Miller. Joelle ĂŠtait furieuse, mais elle savait qu'elle ne pouvait pas changer sa rĂŠalitĂŠ. Prenant une profonde inspiration, elle a demandĂŠ : ÂŤ As-tu parlĂŠ de ma relation avec Adrian? Âť Elle espĂŠrait que le fait d'ĂŞtre alignĂŠe sur la famille Miller aiderait Shawn Ă tenir bon. ÂŤ M. Watson refuse d'en parler. Il a peur que cela ne rende les choses plus difficiles pour vous. Âť Joelle a laissĂŠ ĂŠchapper un rire amer. Depuis le dĂŠbut, elle n'avait jamais pu se tenir sur un pied d'ĂŠgalitĂŠ avec Adrian. Il n'ĂŠtait pas ĂŠtonnant qu'il la mĂŠprise, car elle avait du mal Ă se supporter elle-mĂŞme. Une heure auparavant, elle ĂŠtait dĂŠterminĂŠe Ă demander le divorce. Ă prĂŠsent, elle s'accrochait au nom d'Adrian, dĂŠsespĂŠrĂŠe de rendre la vie plus facile Ă Shawn. ÂŤ Dis Ă Shawn que je suis la femme d'Adrian Miller, celle qu'Irene a sĂŠlectionnĂŠe. Tant que je serai Mme Miller, je ferai bonne figure dans la famille Miller!Âť Des pas ont rĂŠsonnĂŠ derrière elle. Joelle s'est retournĂŠe et a croisĂŠ le regard froid d'Adrian. Ă ses cĂ´tĂŠs se tenait une jeune fille Ă l'allure frĂŞle, aux grands yeux innocents, qui s'accrochait ouvertement Ă Adrian. Le regard de celui-ci sur Joelle ĂŠtait empli d'un froid dĂŠdain, comme si le simple fait de reconnaĂŽtre sa prĂŠsence ĂŠtait un effort. Il avait vu clair dans son jeu ; Joelle ne voulait pas vraiment divorcer. La femme qui avait parlĂŠ si rĂŠsolument de quitter la maison se tenait maintenant lĂ , exhibant fièrement son titre de Mme Miller. Sa menace de divorcer n'ĂŠtait rien d'autre qu'un stratagème, comme une querelle d'amoureux qui se terminait par des menaces vides de sens. Cette femme rusĂŠe l'avait d**guĂŠ pour qu'il devienne son mari. Avec des tactiques aussi trompeuses, comment pouvait-elle facilement se dĂŠfaire de cette union? Ce mĂŞme mariage servait de bouĂŠe de sauvetage Ă sa famille en difficultĂŠ. Il avait donnĂŠ au Groupe Watson une centaine de millions chaque annĂŠe. Joelle serait idiote de risquer de perdre cette somme en divorçant. Chapitre 4 Elle a fini par comprendre Joelle ĂŠtait depuis longtemps devenue insensible Ă l'indiffĂŠrence frileuse d'Adrian. Elle a observĂŠ tranquillement leurs bras entrelacĂŠs, ses pensĂŠes dĂŠrivant vers les doux moments capturĂŠs dans les vidĂŠos de Rebecca qui avaient fait beaucoup d'envieux. Quel couple parfait! Cette pensĂŠe a des picotements Joelle. ÂŤ Joelle, par pitiĂŠ, ne te trompe pas!Âť La voix de Rebecca ĂŠtait empreinte d'urgence et elle a rapidement retirĂŠ sa main du bras d'Adrian. ÂŤ Je ne vais pas bien et je ne peux pas marcher bien loin. Adie ĂŠtait juste assez gentil pour me soutenir. Âť Joelle a rĂŠussi Ă esquisser un lĂŠger sourire. ÂŤ Qu'est-ce qui t'amène Ă l'hĂ´pital? Âť, a-t-elle demandĂŠ Ă Adrian, ignorant dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠment l'explication de Rebecca. ÂŤ C'est Ă propos d'Erick Âť, est intervenue Rebecca, les mains jointes devant elle comme une enfant repentante. ÂŤ Je suis aussi venue te prĂŠsenter mes excuses, Joelle. DĂŠsolĂŠe qu'Erick ait ĂŠtĂŠ si imprudent et que ton frère se soit retrouvĂŠ Ă l'hĂ´pital. Âť Joelle a rĂŠtorquĂŠ : ÂŤ J'ai bien entendu imprudent? Ton frère a failli t*er le mien, et tu penses que des excuses suffisent Ă arranger les choses? Âť Rebecca a tressailli, s'agrippant instinctivement Ă la manche d'Adrian pour se soutenir. La voix d'Adrian ĂŠtait aussi froide que l'hiver lorsqu'il a finalement pris la parole. ÂŤ Ăa suffit, Joelle. Ce n'ĂŠtait pas intentionnel. Âť Il s'est ensuite adressĂŠ Ă Rebecca avec un ton plus doux. ÂŤ Allons-y. Tu n'es pas lĂ pour voir Erick? Âť Une vague de prise de conscience glacĂŠe a envahi Joelle. Elle avait espĂŠrĂŠ naĂŻvement qu'Adrian ĂŠtait lĂ pour prendre des nouvelles de Shawn. Mais non, il avait juste accompagnĂŠ Rebecca, pour voir Erick. MĂŞme s'il s'arrĂŞtait pour voir Shawn, ce ne serait que par obligation, et cela ne pouvait pas aller plus loin. Elle savait qu'Adrian ne la dĂŠfendrait jamais. ÂŤ Rebecca, je n'oublierai pas ce qu'Erick a fait!Âť, a dit Joelle. Les jambes de Rebecca se sont dĂŠrobĂŠes et elle s'est effondrĂŠe contre la poitrine d'Adrian. Andrian l'a rattrapĂŠe juste Ă temps. ÂŤ Joelle, Erick ne voulait pas faire de mal. Il est aussi hospitalisĂŠ!Âť ÂŤ Il est mort? Si ce n'est pas le cas, il doit payer pour ce qu'il a fait!Âť Joelle s'emportait rarement, mais cette fois-ci, c'ĂŠtait diffĂŠrent. Shawn ĂŠtait la seule famille qui lui restait. Son père, handicapĂŠ par une attaque cĂŠrĂŠbrale, gisait dans un ĂŠtat vĂŠgĂŠtatif avec peu ou pas d'espoir de guĂŠrison, et sa mère avait pĂŠri dans un accident de voiture. Depuis ses dix-huit ans, il n'y avait plus qu'elle et Shawn pour affronter le monde ensemble. Pendant leurs heures les plus sombres, Shawn avait portĂŠ le fardeau seul, permettant Ă Joelle de poursuivre sa passion pour le violon. Aujourd'hui, l'idĂŠe de le perdre ĂŠtait insupportable. La seule chose qu'elle souhaitait, c'ĂŠtait la mort d'Erick. ÂŤ Joelle, comment peux-tu dire ça? Âť, a sanglotĂŠ Rebecca, la voix tremblante d'incrĂŠdulitĂŠ. La patience d'Adrian a craquĂŠ, et ses yeux sont devenus froids alors qu'ils se sont fixĂŠs sur Joelle. ÂŤ Qu'est-ce que tu veux? Âť ÂŤ Shawn a reçu deux notifications d'ĂŠtat critique. Qu'en est-il d'Erick? Âť Rebecca a sursautĂŠ, s'accrochant Ă Adrian comme s'il ĂŠtait la seule chose qui l'empĂŞchait de s'effondrer. ÂŤ Joelle, je t'en prie!Il ne me reste qu'un seul frère. Aie pitiĂŠ, s'il te plaĂŽt!Âť Elle s'est ensuite ĂŠvanouie avant que Joelle ne puisse rĂŠpondre, ne laissant plus de place Ă l'argumentation. Adrian a pris Rebecca dans ses bras, ses yeux remplis de reproches froids alors qu'il regardait Joelle une dernière fois. Il s'est alors ĂŠloignĂŠ, laissant Joelle debout, ancrĂŠe sur place, incapable de bouger ou mĂŞme de penser pendant ce qui lui a semblĂŠ ĂŞtre une ĂŠternitĂŠ. Avant leur mariage, elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ la fille chĂŠrie, mais après, elle s'ĂŠtait rĂŠduite au rĂ´le de servante d'Adrian. Avec le recul, elle s'est rendu compte Ă quel point elle avait ĂŠtĂŠ naĂŻve. Elle ĂŠtait autrefois une personne très fière, mais maintenant elle endure toutes sortes de griefs juste pour faire plaisir Ă son mari. C'ĂŠtait pitoyable ! Cela fait trois ans, il est temps de divorcer et de commencer une nouvelle vie... ...... Que se passe-t-il ensuite? Le nombre de chapitres affichĂŠs est limitĂŠ. Appuyez sur le bouton ci-dessous pour installer notre application et lire les chapitres suivants. (AccĂŠder automatiquement Ă ce livre en ouvrant l'application) &3& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/20322410-fb_contact-fra | Romantic Fiction | https://www.facebook.com/61564727788108/ | 16 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.kifflire.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/20322410-fb_contact-fra220_2-1029-core2.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=157725&accid=1017049066627247&rawadid=120212801065060391 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464786745_535892925894709_7172336259466652920_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=zakljz367wUQ7kNvgGPYCVj&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKMRjhcK1FlxYvSS3vUvqMl&oh=00_AYA1ZfFs4rNcxPd3p50kAZUYugBDE1__kO4KcPWlKXWi6g&oe=67306221 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Romantic Fiction | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,582 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
Read next chapterđ | She signed the divorce papers and left without taking her phone. He checked her phone and got floored at the message: Please come tomorrow for another prenatal care checkup! ============= Chapter 1 Ex-girlfriend Returns Raegan Hayes was a little absent-minded at the moment. All she could think of since this afternoon was the doctor's words. "Congratulations! You are going to be a mom." Suddenly, Mitchel Dixon pinched her arm. His low voice came the next second. "Come back to earth. What are you thinking about?" Mitchel was her husband. They had been married secretly for two years. He was her superior at work, the president of the Dixon Group. Everything had happened so fast. She was newly employed in the company when they unexpectedly got married. At that time, Mitchel's grandfather fell seriously ill. It was then he proposed a fake marriage just to fulfill his grandfather's dying wish. They signed a prenup, agreeing to hide their marriage from the public. Their union could be terminated at any time. It was an unconventional thing to do. However, Raegan only considered herself lucky at that time. Never in a million years did she think she would ever get married to the man she had a crush on for eight years. She delightfully agreed. After their marriage, Mitchel was very busy. He spent most of his time working. Raegan wished she could spend more time with him at home. However, she was rest assured because there hadn't been any rumors or scandals about him with women in the past two years. Except for his mild indifference, Mitchel was a perfect husband. Raegan had mixed feelings as she stared at the medical report. In the end, she decided to tell Mitchel this news. She also wanted to tell him that she hadn't learned about him for the first time two years ago and that she had been crushing on him for many years before then. Just then, Mitchelâs phone rang. He went to the balcony and answered the phone. Raegan checked the time and found that it was already midnight. She felt a little uneasy. Who would call Mitchel at this hour? Mitchel spent a few minutes on the balcony. Thereafter, he returned and changed into formal attire. His handsome face which had a clear outline made him look dignified. He was something to see now. "Don't wait up for me. Good night," he said finally. What? He was on his way out? At this hour? Raegan's grip on the report tightened as she stared at him in disappointment. Unconsciously, she withdrew slightly. After thinking for a while, she blurted out, "It's already so late." Mitchel's fingers froze on his tie. With a faint smile, he pinched her earlobe and said, "Be good, okay? There's something I have to do. Don't wait up." With that, he headed for the door. "Mitchel." Raegan quickly ran and caught up with him. Mitchel turned around and looked at her seriously. "What's the matter?" There was a tinge of coldness to his voice. An icy cloud hung over them as they stared at each other. A little distressed, Raegan asked in a low voice, "I would like to visit my grandma tomorrow. Can you accompany me there?" Her grandmother always wanted to see her. As a result, Raegan wanted to take Mitchel there to assure her grandma they were happy. "Let's talk about it tomorrow, okay?" Without agreeing or declining, Mitchel left in a hurry. Several thoughts were threading Raegan's mind. She couldn't sleep a wink. After tossing and turning for a long time, she went to the kitchen and made herself a warm glass of milk. A few notifications from some online blogs came into her phone. However, she wasn't interested in them. She was about to swipe them away when one of them caught her attention. The familiar name made her click on it. The news read, "Famous designer, Lauren Murray was spotted at the airport with her mysterious boyfriend earlier today." Lauren was wearing a bucket hat. The man's figure was vague, but the outline of his body was enough to show that he was dashing. Raegan zoomed in on the picture. The next second, her heart dropped. Mitchel was the man in the picture! So, he canceled the afternoon meeting just to go pick up his ex-girlfriend from the airport? This realization settled like a boulder in Raegan's gut, rendering her flustered. Her hands trembled. Subconsciously, she dialed Mitchel's number. The dial tone brought her back to her senses. Just as she was about to hang up, the line connected, and a voice came from the other end. "Hello!" It was a particularly gentle woman's voice. Raegan froze for a second and then threw the phone away. She suddenly felt sick in her stomach. Covering her mouth, she ran into the bathroom and threw up in the toilet bowl. The next morning, Raegan went to work on time. Mitchel had tried to get her to stop working after they got married. Stubbornly, she insisted on making her own money. Mitchel didn't kick against her decision, but he asked her to work as his assistant, helping him with the daily chores. The head assistant, Matteo Jenkins was left to take care of the major affairs Mitchel had. Matteo was the only Dixon Group employee who knew about their marriage. Since inception, only male assistants were hired for the president's office. Reagan was the first and only female. Her employment broke the protocol. As a result, other workers couldn't help but wonder if she was involved with Mitchel. It took a while before they realized that Mitchel never gave Raegan special treatment. Strangely, this made them despise her even more. After all, no one would last long in anything while taking advantage of their looks. At this time, one of Raegan's colleagues handed her a document and ordered her to take it to Mitchel's office. Mitchel didn't return home last night. Raegan was so worried that she didn't sleep at all. All she kept thinking about was the woman who answered his phone when she called. What was her relationship with Mitchel? Raegan already knew the answer to that, but she was still in denial. It was difficult for her to come to terms with that fact. Raegan tried to remain calm now. She reasoned that no matter what happened, she deserved a result that would be rewarding for all the years she spent loving Mitchel. This couldn't be all for nothing, right? She pressed the elevator button calmly and went up to the president's office. Before she walked out of the elevator, she smoothed her hair to make sure she looked good. She had arrived at the office, only to see that the door was ajar. A man's voice came. She halted instantly. "Come on, man! Do you have any feelings for Raegan or not?" The voice belonged to Luis Stevens, a childhood friend of Mitchel's. "What do you mean exactly?" Mitchel asked in a cold voice. "You know exactly what I mean!" Luis clicked his tongue impatiently and added, "I think Raegan is a good girl. Isn't she your type?" "Do you want me to hand her over to you?" Mitchel asked carelessly. "You know what, forget it!" The scornful laughter of Luis sounded particularly harsh in Raegan's ears. They were talking about her as if she were an object. Raegan took a deep breath and tightened her grip on the document. Soon, Luis's voice was heard again. "By the way, I saw the gossip news about Lauren's mysterious boyfriend this morning. That was you, right?" "Yes." "Well, well, well! That woman still has you wrapped around her little finger. You always want to please her." Luis sighed and continued to tease Mitchel. "As the old saying goes, absence makes the heart grow fonder. Tell me, did you two..." Their conversation was like a thunder exploding over Raegan's head. Her face turned pale and her body was as cold as ice. The woman was indeed Lauren! Absence made the heart grow fonder! Every word drove a knife into her heart. Several whispering voices filled her head at this time. She suddenly felt light-headed. Her vision became blurry. She held the wall and took a step backward. Suddenly, the door was opened from inside. "Raegan?" Chapter 2 One-sided Love Luis was the one who opened the door. It appeared he was on his way out. Raegan balled her hands, turned to him, and nodded. "Hey, Mr. Stevens!" Without waiting for him to respond to her greeting, she walked past him and entered the office with the document. Mitchel was seated behind a large luxurious desk. In an expensive suit and matching tie, he looked particularly handsome. Raegan noticed it wasn't the same suit he had on when he left home last night. How did he get changed? With her eyes lowered, she swallowed that question and said instead, "Mr. Dixon, this is from the Marketing Department. Please sign it." Mitchel was expressionless as he signed the document at a glance. Raegan walked out the door as soon as he handed the document back to her. Luis was still standing at the threshold. It wasn't until she went out of sight that Luis turned to Mitchel and said in a hushed tone, "Do you think she heard us?" Mitchel's appealing eyes were expressionless at the moment. Obviously, he wasn't paying attention to what Luis was saying. To Mitchel, Raegan had always been docile and never felt jealous of anyone. Her strict obedience was all Mitchel demanded from her in exchange for treating her well. In the elevator. Raegan held her breath just to hold back her tears. Unfortunately, it didn't work. She had thought two years would be enough for Mitchel to realize how much she loved him and reciprocate her love. Now, it turned out that was just a pipe dream. She realized she would always play second fiddle to Lauren, Mitchel's true love. Reagan wiped her tears when the elevator halted. Save for her pale face, she looked normal when the doors opened. She dragged herself to the break room, intending to make herself a cup of tea. Several employees were chatting inside. "Guys, have you heard? Lauren Murray is back." "And who is that?" "Oh, my! You don't know her? Lauren is the heiress of the Murray Group as well as a world-class designer. Most importantly, she's the only girlfriend Mr. Dixon has ever shown off in public. She's his first love!" "Why is her return such a big deal? Isn't it rumored that there is something between Mr. Dixon and Raegan?" "Raegan? She's nothing to Mr. Dixon. Mr. Dixon never admitted that he was dating her. And that is no surprise to me. After all, look at her. She's not even that beautiful. Yet, she behaves as if she's already Mrs. Dixon. What a fool!" Standing at the door, Raegan smiled with self-mockery as she listened to them. It turned out everyone else saw the truth except her. The love was one-sided. "Ha-ha, have you finally woken up from your wild dream, Raegan?" A voice of mockery suddenly came from behind. Raegan turned around to see Tessa Lloyd, Mitchel's cousin, who had always despised her. Tessa must have also heard the employees gossiping. The last thing Raegan wanted to do now was argue with Tessa in the company. She turned to leave, but Tessa blocked her way. With a cup of coffee in her hand, Tessa uttered sarcastically, "Lauren is back now. Do you think Mitchel will still give you any attention?" Raegan said nothing to that. Seconds later, Tessa continued the ridicule. "Maybe itâs time for you to seek out another man, you pathetic fool." Raegan clenched her fists and said coldly, "Ms. Lloyd, if you are interested in that kind of thing, feel free to pursue it yourself." "You..." Raegan's retort made Tessa's face change. The next second, Tessa raised her hand and emptied the cup of coffee on Raegan. Raegan didn't think for a second that Tessa would do something so crazy. She held up her arms just to block the liquid from her face. In no time, the coffee drenched her clothes. Raegan frowned. "What did you do that for? Are you out of your mind?" It was lunch break and many employees were free to watch the drama. Tessa was even more complacent when she saw growing onlookers. She put on a mean-girl look as she said, "What makes you so smug every day, huh? Do you seriously think that others don't know you are just an orphan? The nerve of..." Tessa was silenced by Raeganâs shove. Her jaw dropped to the floor. She had never expected that Raegan, who was so quiet and timid, would shove her. Tessa stuttered, "You... You pushed me? How dare you!" Raegan eyed her and replied, "Yes, I did! It seems you need to be taught simple politeness." Indeed, she lost her parents when she was a child. But that didn't mean she would allow someone to walk over her for it. Wrinkles appeared on Tessa's face as she frowned in anger. As Mitchel's cousin, she was used to being fawned over and respected. This was the first time she had been treated like this. Tessa charged at Raegan like a raging bull, poised to retaliate. This time, Raegan was fully prepared for what was coming. She grabbed Tessa's wrist so that the latter couldn't move another inch. Tessa was shorter than Raegan. As a result, she struggled like an octopus that had one of its tentacles stuck in a fishing trap. Tessa cursed angrily, "How dare you put your hands on me? Who do you think you are?" These harsh words attracted more people to the break room. "That's enough!" Out of the blue, a baritone came from behind. Mitchel had left his office and ran into this hullabaloo. The entire room fell silent. "Mitchel?" Tessa's blood ran cold at the sight of Mitchel. She had always been scared of him. Her mother also warned her against provoking him. But when she remembered that Raegan humiliated her, she put on a pitiful expression and sobbed. "Mitchel, she bullied me." The sunlight from outside fell on Mitchel's handsome face. Raegan felt so grieved all of a sudden, and lowered her head to look at her clothes which were soaked with coffee. Their gaze met in the air. With a deep frown, Mitchel looked at Raegan and said, "Raegan, have you forgotten the rules of the company?" His ruthlessness made Raegan's breathing cease. She couldn't believe her ears. No one dared to make a sound at this moment. Raegan just stood straight there with her slender figure. When she got employed here, Mitchel had told her that the Dixon Group wasn't a place for her to mess around and that he would not tolerate her making any mistakes. Raegan could understand why he took this stand. However, at this moment, she was desperate to know whether Mitchel had heard those hard words Tessa scolded her or he was just pretending not to have heard because he agreed to those words. Was she truly insignificant to him? Scared to death by Mitchel's rage, the crowd soon dispersed. A few employees were bold enough to peep from a distance, unwilling to miss the good show. Mitchel's cold eyes made Raegan shiver from head to toe. Raegan pinched her palm to suppress her emotions as she looked at Tessa. "I'm sorry, Ms. Lloyd. As an employee of the Dixon Group, it was wrong of me to have offended you." Eyeing Raegan, Tessa raised her chin complacently. "Humph! Don't think you'll be let off the hook just by making a simple apology. I don't buy..." "The offence has nothing to do with the company. Personally, I refuse to apologize to you. Now, if you'd excuse me," Raegan chimed in. She then walked past Mitchel without sparing him another look. "You..." Tessa's face turned blue after hearing what Raegan said. Never in her years of being alive had she been so humiliated. She was always the bully, not the victim! The humiliation was so much that scolding Raegan wouldn't appease her anger. Pointing in Raegan's direction, Tessa shouted, "Mitchel, did you hear what that woman just said? She humiliated me, yet she's still so arrogant. Call her back. I have to teach her some manners!" Mitchel, staring at Raegan's thin back, had an ambiguous expression at this moment. "Enough!" he said coldly, raising his hand. As someone who lived and breathed drama and cruelty, Tessa didn't think Mitchel was partial to Raegan just now. She assumed that Mitchel didn't care about Raegan at all. Tessa gritted her teeth and said viciously, "Next time, I'll get someone to teach her a lesson." "Tessa!" Mitchel's tone and squint made it a reproof. Tessa trembled at once. With a somber face, Mitchel said, "I'll only say it once. Forget about what happened here today. Leave Raegan alone." The aura he exuded made her tongue go dry. All the vicious ideas she had in store against Raegan disappeared in an instant. She stammered, "Ok... Okay, got it..." Mitchel cast a cold glance at her and spoke to Matteo. "Irrelevant people wouldn't be allowed in here from today onwards." Without catching the drift, Tessa flattered Mitchel. "Nice call. This is a top company. Not everyone gains access in here." Matteo nodded to Mitchel and then walked over to Tessa. He gestured to the exit. "Ms. Lloyd, this way, please." It wasn't until this moment that Tessa realized that she was the irrelevant person Mitchel just mentioned. She tried to speak to him, but Matteo blocked her way. The security guards then escorted her out. They showed her no mercy. Her struggle was useless. Meanwhile, Raegan got changed when she returned to her office. Her heart was filled with sadness as she thought of how Mitchel looked at her minutes ago. Closing hour soon rolled by. Raegan took her bag and headed for the exit. However, Matteo stopped her. He said, "Mr. Dixon has something urgent to deal with, so he asked me to drive you home." Raegan declined the ride without thinking twice. She was blind before, but now she could see through the situation. In Mitchel's eyes, she was just a nobody. How could Mitchel agree to accompany her to visit her grandmother when he didn't even care about her? Upon arriving at the hospital, Raegan saw that the nurse was about to feed her grandmother dinner. Raegan took the job over and did it by herself. All her life, her grandmother had been living in the countryside, enjoying a quiet life. Everything changed last month when her routine medical checkup showed that she was in need of medical care. Raegan insisted on bringing her to the city for better treatment. Her grandmother wasn't aware of her marriage to Mitchel. Raegan had planned to surprise her today. But as it turned out, that was no longer necessary. Raegan waited for her grandmother to fall asleep before she left. She walked out of the hospital and waited for a taxi. In the distance, a black luxury car pulled into the entrance of the hospital. Raegan's eyes lit up when she saw it. She recognized that car as Mitchel's. Did he come to pick her up? At this moment, she forgot all the pain she had been feeling. Were her thoughts about him all wrong? Did he care for her, contrary to the gossip? The door of the driver's side opened and Mitchel got out. Raegan started walking toward him with her heart brimming with joy. Suddenly, she stopped dead in her tracks. Mitchel had just walked over to the other side and carried a woman out of the car. Worry and compassion were written all over his handsome face. This wiped the smile on Raegan's face. Her heart sank. Chapter 3 Let's Divorce Mitchel's tall and straight figure got closer and closer to Raegan. And then, without saying a word, he strode past Raegan. It was hard to tell if Mitchel saw Raegan or just ignored her. Regardless, Raegan noticed that the woman in his arms was the same one who had been photographed with him yesterday. She was Lauren. Raegan's shoes felt like they were made of lead as she walked away. She lost all awareness of her surroundings. She got into a taxi absentmindedly. Suddenly, the driver uttered, "Ma'am, where to?" Raegan was stunned for a moment. She didn't want to go back to Serenity Villas. It was only a matter of time before that place stopped being her home. After a while, she replied, "Please take me to Crystal Bay." She had purchased an apartment at Crystal Bay after getting married to Mitchel. At the time, she had hopes of bringing her grandmother to the city, so she bought the apartment on mortgage. It wasn't that big, but it had more than enough space for two people. Mitchel didn't understand why she wanted to buy an apartment. He offered to give her a bigger one, but she declined. Looking back now, she realized that buying that apartment was the only wise decision she had ever made in the last two years. When she arrived at the apartment complex, Raegan sat in the park alone, trying to cool herself down. The memories of the past two years were bittersweet. Two years had passed in the blink of an eye even though it was more than seven hundred days and nights. Love could move mountains, they said. Yet, her love didn't move that stone of a man. She finally realized what a fool she had been. She had been making herself a laughingstock in front of everyone. It was already late in the night before Raegan finally decided to go into her apartment. As soon as she stepped out of the elevator, she saw Mitchel standing in front of the door. His sleeves were rolled up casually, and the top buttons of his shirt were undone, which revealed his long neck and part of his collarbone. He was leaning on the wall by the door, his handsome face straight. Raegan froze for a moment. Why was he here? Didn't she see him at the hospital with Lauren? What brought him here? Their eyes met. With his coat draped over his arm and one of his hands in his pocket, Mitchel squinted at her. "Why didn't you answer the phone?" he asked, sounding a little grumpy like someone who hadn't slept in a long time. Raegan took out her phone and saw she had accidentally put it on DND. There were five missed calls from Mitchel. This marked the first time in their two-year marriage. Mitchel blew up her phone because he couldn't find her? Surprising! Before today, she would have been overjoyed by this. People would've thought she won the lottery. But now, she just threw her phone back into her bag, folded her arms, and said in a hoarse voice, "I didn't hear it ring." Mitchel raised his hand to check the time on the watch, and said impatiently, "I've been looking for you for two hours." After arranging everything for Lauren, he returned home to find an empty house. He looked for Raegan everywhere. When he couldn't find her, he asked Matteo to check the surveillance footage of all the roads that led away from the company. He later found out that Raegan went to Crystal Bay without telling him. "Next time, tell me when you are coming here, okay? Let's go home now." After that, Mitchel walked toward the elevator without sparing her another glance. He meant to go back to Serenity Villas. Raegan didn't move an inch. She just stared at his broad back and pondered reluctantly. Would they have a future? Mitchell turned around, only to see that Raegan hadn't taken a single step. He frowned and asked, "Can't you walk? Do you want me to carry you instead?" The light in the corridor illuminated his face, making his side profile almost impeccable. Raegan took a deep breath and said, "Let's divorce." "What do you mean?" Mitchel's voice was cold, and his handsome face changed immediately. "I want to move into my own place. After all, we will be strangers soon." Raegan forced a smile, but her heart was aching as if someone was tearing it apart bit by bit. "We will be strangers?" Mitchel smiled coldly. "Raegan, what do you think our relationship is now?" His questioning left Raegan stunned for a moment. Mitchel had made it very clear to her from the very beginning. This facade of their marriage had happened by mutual agreement. There was no love. In the eyes of others, they were nothing more than just a superior and a subordinate. Mitchel was quite the catch in Ardlens. Many young ladies longed for his love and were even willing to throw themselves at him. His question just now reminded her of that fact. Was he afraid that she wouldn't let him go that easily? If that was the case, he couldn't be more wrong... After biting her lower lip to conceal her bitterness, Raegan said, "I'm sorry, Mr. Dixon. I was giving it too much thought. Anyway, please leave me alone from now on. You don't have to come here again." After saying that, Raegan couldn't help but burst into tears. How could she not be sad when she was cutting ties with the man she had loved for a decade? It was such a long time. Regardless of how difficult it was, she knew it was time to let go. It was high time she stopped being a fool. Strangely, the light in the corridor began flickering. The deathly stare Mitchel was giving Raegan right now made the atmosphere seem like the moment before an attack in a horror movie. Although he understood that Raegan sometimes could throw a tantrum, he felt that she had just crossed the line now. His eyes shone like blazing torches at this moment. But when he saw the tears in her eyes, the rage inside him extinguished in an instant. He said in a low voice, "If this is about what happened between you and Tessa, I..." "No, this isn't about her. Mr. Dixon, please leave now." A lot of things happened between them. And the incident with Tessa didn't come close to any. Raegan felt exhausted. She passed by Mitchel and was about to open the door. Yet, Mitchel was displeased with her stubbornness. He loosened his tie irritably. He then took a step forward and grabbed her wrist. "Stop this, will you?" A second later, he put his arm around her shoulder and pulled her into his arms. He instantly realized that she was burning up like someone who had been set on fire. "You have a fever?" Raegan felt dizzy. She rested her head on his chest weakly. This made the whole situation complicated. Reagan was slow to catch that. When she finally realized that her body was too close to his, she put her hands against his chest and tried to pull back. Before she could escape, Mitchel pulled her back and held her by the waist. With a cold face, he said in a low voice, "Where do you think you are going?" The light flickered again. Out of the blue, Mitchel lifted her up. He then headed for the elevator. In a daze, Raegan asked softly, "What are you doing?" "What does it look like I am doing?" Mitchel remarked. "Taking you to the hospital, of course." "No way!" Raegan cried out in surprise and seemed to regain more strength. Mitchel might find out about her condition if they went to the hospital. Raegan struggled to get out of Mitchel's arms. However, his tight grip made her efforts fruitless. "Don't be so stubborn. You are sick, so you must see the doctor," Mitchel said firmly. He walked to the elevator with her in his arms. At this moment, Raegan's heart was thumping so hard that it could jump out of her chest. She flailed in protest. "Put me down! I don't want to go to the hospital!" &32& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/46526322-fb_contact-e | Lime novel | https://www.facebook.com/100090847180115/ | 682 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | IMAGE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/46526322-fb_contact-enj57-1125-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=791750052879575&rawadid=120213973976950758 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464963881_1627934364809913_9121855133019932057_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=DgXYTZ5kqCAQ7kNvgFcZk8m&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKMRjhcK1FlxYvSS3vUvqMl&oh=00_AYBG9Ci3YAJdvM5tlBeA6XoLqaby84YNZzLZk3HN8fDosg&oe=67308D5C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Lime novel | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,598 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458293998_1696356974464897_6574490535769686259_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=rP1BEUQKJ1wQ7kNvgHIGCfu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AKMRjhcK1FlxYvSS3vUvqMl&oh=00_AYBCQBFZhMaSr1kqFHrRq3RMMfpLuuXWzrBFrvOnWxhgKg&oe=67308D9F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,612 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458293998_1696356974464897_6574490535769686259_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=rP1BEUQKJ1wQ7kNvgHIGCfu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYBe6Y2vWtxLSkYIcpHrTLUw6pe2YWSUKvcBzqWbvsKRRA&oe=67308D9F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,634 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/459999107_981601467313221_1008304745956551504_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=N-Y4PhIA6ncQ7kNvgHXBhww&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYAqArWEWVNv_So5kgvBveGM3jyuAOs1_fYq11SYSIwlbg&oe=673067FD | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,639 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/459999107_981601467313221_1008304745956551504_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=N-Y4PhIA6ncQ7kNvgHXBhww&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYAqArWEWVNv_So5kgvBveGM3jyuAOs1_fYq11SYSIwlbg&oe=673067FD | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,686 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
No | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458293998_1696356974464897_6574490535769686259_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=rP1BEUQKJ1wQ7kNvgHIGCfu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYBe6Y2vWtxLSkYIcpHrTLUw6pe2YWSUKvcBzqWbvsKRRA&oe=67308D9F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,693 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2359720}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đĽđĽClick to read the next chapter for freeđ | My husband Elijah wanted to do some sweet things with me again, however, he suddenly brought up his ex-girlfriend. This caused my emotions to explode. I hadnât realized Iâd already fallen asleep when I heard the bedroom door open. Something made a loud, clattering noise. I quickly sat up and saw Elijah staggering toward me. I hastily moved backward, giving him a look of disbelief. He reeked of alcohol and was obviously drunk. If he wasnât, he would have just ignored me and gone straight to bed. âHey, playing hard to get, arenât you?â he said in a slurred manner, his bloodshot eyes becoming more intense. Then without warning, he leaned forward and kissed me on the lips. I didnât have time to react, though, because he suddenly started unbuttoning my oversized nightshirt. âWhen did Serena start working at your company?â I asked him coldly. He shrugged, but didnât stop what he was doing. âNot sure. Probably recruited by HR.â He traveled down and then his tongue followed. Finally, the last button on my sleep pajama surrendered. âSerena is such a talented addition to our team,â he remarked with admiration. As I reminisced about the scene I witnessed at the company, my husband and his ex-girlfriend Serena were closely nestled together, sharing laughter and conversation. But I couldn't muster the courage to confront her and ask her to keep her distance from him. Jealousy and pain gripped my chest. I couldnât believe he was saying all this while undressing me! I knew then that he still had feelings for her. "You know," he said, oblivious to my disappointment, "she's even outperforming many of the senior colleagues who've been with the company for years." Even as we locked eyes, there was something in his gazeâa kind of infatuationâthat he never seemed to exhibit when it came to me. Heâs probably picturing me as her! I thought with disgust. I was so disappointed in him, and didnât want him anywhere near me. Iâve been obedient, helpful, and hardworking⌠But no one cares. Not even my own husband. Iâm nothing to him. He doesnât love me and he never learned to. Thatâs the most painful of all. A sudden surge of clarity and calmness washed over me. âI want to divorce you.â | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 831 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13552&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456447136_513011344615331_1497297673340256615_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=vVzRhniaApwQ7kNvgGnJkhs&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYBwwqcrx_vUB0fjp2QCZ49hxNmNF54nNMplMO-LTAeXWw&oe=67307D14 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,727 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458293998_1696356974464897_6574490535769686259_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=rP1BEUQKJ1wQ7kNvgHIGCfu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYBe6Y2vWtxLSkYIcpHrTLUw6pe2YWSUKvcBzqWbvsKRRA&oe=67308D9F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,359,728 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358965}' |
No | 2024-11-05 17:45 | active | 1728 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, the lanterns in the corridors cast intricate shadows on the window frames, resembling beasts looming on the walls. Carissa Sinclair sat on a chair with her hands folded in her lap, her slender body hidden beneath plain clothes. She looked at the man before herâher husband whom she had spent a year waiting for. Barrett Warren was still wearing his slightly-worn battle armor. Standing under the dim light, he looked commanding and handsome. His face showed a mix of determination and a touch of regret. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has said that General Yates is a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife and equal to you." "Calling her that doesn't change anything. Ultimately, sheâs really just a concubine in disguise," Carissa replied, remaining indifferent. Barrett frowned. "What does it matter? Aurora and I developed feelings for each other on the battlefield. We earned this marriage through our achievements. I donât need your approval." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Developed feelings, huh? Do you remember what you said to me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett had left to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before leaving, he had lifted his wifeâs veil and promised her, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Feeling awkward, Barrett turned away. "Forget what I said. When I married you, I didnât understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! Everything Carissa had done over the past year had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting her brow. Barrett spoke of Aurora Yates with a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother. Sheâs made her very happy. Even her health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was seriously ill. I brought in the best physician to treat her. I managed the estateâs affairs by day and stayed up nights by her bedside. It was only because of this that her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was stating the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa pressed her lips into a thin line as she blinked away the tears in her eyes and sharpened her gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. Sheâs a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldnât want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. Sheâs straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you wonât like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Chapter 2 Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, youâll be in separate wings. She wonât compete with you for control of the household. She doesnât care about those things.â âDo you really think Iâm attached to managing this household?â Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrettâs mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. âEnough, I wonât argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing,â said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. As Carissa watched him leave in a huff, she felt even more bitter. âMy lady, my lord was too much!â said Lulu, Carissaâs maid, wiping her tears away. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, why would we stay in this house any longer?â Lulu held her forehead and gasped. âBut your mother arranged this marriage, and your father wanted you to marry and have children.â Tears finally welled up in Carissaâs eyes at the mention of her parents. Her father had stayed loyal to her mother, never taking a concubine. They had six sons and one daughter. All her brothers followed her father to the battlefield. Three years ago, none returned from the Southern Frontier. Though she was a girl, Carissa came from a family of warriors and started training as a child. At the age of seven, she was sent to study under a master, where she also learned military strategy. When she returned home at fifteen, she learned her father and brothers had died a year earlier. Her mother, who had gone blind from crying too much, held Carissa close and said, "You must live like the noble girls in the kingdom. Find a good husband, marry, have children, and lead a peaceful life. Youâre the only child I have left.â Carissa felt like someone had gouged her heart out. The pain she felt was so intense she couldn't even bring herself to cry. Determined to please her mother, she spent a year mastering the traditional values and duties expected of a noblewoman. She also learned accounting and how to manage a household. Not only was Carissa the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, but she was also known for her beauty. So, suitors flooded their doorstep. Her mother had chosen Barrett because he had sworn he would never take another wife if he married Carissa. But six months ago, tragedy struck. All the residents of Northwatch Estate were murdered. No one was spared, not even the children or servants. Each victim suffered numerous knife wounds, and their bodies were brutally dismembered. Carissaâs youngest nephew had been only two and a half years old, born after the death of her third brother. The local authorities and garrison unit captured a few of the assailants. After further investigation, they were discovered to be spies from an enemy kingdom, Westhaven. The war at the front line was raging, yet these spies didn't hesitate to reveal themselves just to annihilate her family. The manner of the murder suggested it was more of a personal vengeance than anything else. When Carissa received the news, she rushed home, only to find her grandmotherâs and motherâs gruesomely dismembered bodies. Blood stained every corner of the residence, and the dead were left in agonizing states. Now, Carissa was the lone survivor of the marquis' family. The idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. They saw her merely as a delicate, fragile woman. However, Aurora was different. She had earned military merits for her contribution to the war and became the first female general in history. Even the queen dowager had high praise for her. With Aurora supporting Barrett, his future would be more secure. That was the reason the Warren family readily agreed to the marriage. Chapter 3 Lulu brought over the dowry list and explained, "This year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins to support the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." Carissa glanced at the list. "Alright." Just looking at the list put her in a melancholy mood. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she would suffer hardships in her husband's home. "My lady, where can we go? Are we returning to Northwatch Estate? Or should we go back to Meadow Ridge?" Lulu asked, looking distressed. Images of the bloodstained estate and the tragic deaths of her family members flashed through Carissaâs mind, causing a sudden pang of pain in her heart. "Anywhere is better than staying here." "If you leave, youâll be giving them exactly what they want." "So be it. If I stay, Iâll spend my whole life suffering as I watch those two be affectionate. Lulu, I must live well to give my parents and brothers peace in the afterlife," Carissa replied calmly. "My lady!" Lulu wept bitterly. She had been born and raised in Northwatch Estate. The murder had claimed the lives of everyone, including her own family. The images still haunted her, and returning there seemed unthinkable. "Is there no other way?" Lulu asked desperately. Carissaâs eyes grew cold. "There is. I could confront the king and use my familyâs achievements to force him to reverse his edict. If he refuses, Iâll take my own life in protest." Lulu was terrified and immediately protested, "My lady, you can't!" Carissaâs expression softened, and a sly smile appeared on her face. "Do you think Iâm that silly? If I manage to reach the king, Iâll only request an edict for an amicable divorce." Barrett was able to marry Aurora because of a royal edict. So, Carissa should also be issued an official edict to leave. She shouldn't have to sneak away like she was being cast out. The wealth from Northwatch Estate was more than enough for her to live comfortably for the rest of her life. She wouldn't degrade herself unnecessarily. Just then, someone called from outside, "Madam Carissa, the matriarch has requested your presence!" "Itâs Jade, Madam Rebecca's maid. It seems like Madam Rebecca wants to try and persuade you," Lulu whispered. Carissa straightened up, her expression serious. "Then, letâs go." The evening sun glowed like blood, and the autumn wind was chilly. The late king had bestowed the Warren family's current residence, Valor Estate, upon Barrett's grandfather. Though once prestigious, it had fallen into decline. Most of the Warren family's men were warriors who fought on battlefields. Only a few were civil servants who worked in the palace. Barrettâs father, Jonathan, didnât fare well in his official career. His second uncle, Gregory, only held a minor post in the Royal Citadel. Barrett and his eldest brother, Benjamin, were somewhat successful in the military. But before their recent victory, they were only fourth-ranked majors. Both families still lived together in Valor Estate. Splitting the family would only hasten their decline. Accompanied by Lulu, Carissa arrived at Rebeccaâs room. Rebecca's complexion looked a bit better, and she was sitting up in bed. She smiled warmly when she saw Carissa. "Youâre here." Benjamin and his wife, Amelia Morgan, were also in the room. Barrett's sister, Serena, and the other children of the concubines were present as well. Barrett's second aunt, Charlotte Lewis, was also seated nearby. However, her expression was cold and somewhat disdainful. "Hello, Mother. Aunt Charlotte, Benjamin, Amelia," Carissa greeted them politely. "Carissa, come here." Rebecca gestured for her daughter-in-law to sit by her bedside. The older woman held Carissa's hand affectionately and happily said, "Now that Barrett is back, you have someone to rely on. This year has been so hard on you, especially with what happened to your family. Youâre the only one left of the marquis' family. Fortunately, all of that is behind you now." Rebecca was shrewd. She made it clear that Carissa would need to depend on the Warren family in the future, since her family was gone. Carissa pulled her hand away and calmly said, "Mother, I heard you met General Yates today." Rebecca hadnât expected Carissa to be so straightforward. Her smile froze for a moment before she replied, "Yes, I did. Sheâs rather rough around the edges and doesnât compare to you in terms of looks." Carissa gazed at her mother-in-law steadily. "So, are you saying you don't like her?" Chapter 4 Rebecca forced a smile. "How can I decide that after meeting her only once? But since the king has arranged the marriage, itâs a done deal. In the future, she and Barrett will earn military merits together, while you manage the household and enjoy the benefits of their hard work. Isnât that nice?" "Yes, I'm sure," Carissa replied with a smile. "But itâs quite unfair to make General Yates a concubine." Rebecca laughed. "You silly child, how could she be a concubine? The kingâs edict makes her Barrett's legal wife. Also, sheâs a military officer who holds an official rank. Officials canât be concubines. She'll be a legal wife like you. There won't be any distinction between ranks for the two of you." "No distinction? Is there such a custom in our kingdom?" Carissa asked. Rebeccaâs expression grew a bit colder. "Carissa, youâve always been sensible. Now that youâve married into our family, you should prioritize us. According to the Defense Minister, Auroraâs contributions in this battle were greater than Barrettâs. With you managing the household, they'll be able to work together as husband and wife and focus on their military service. In the future, they'll surely become famous generals like his grandfather." Carissaâs tone remained chilly as she said, "If theyâre husband and wife, then I have no role here." "How can you say that? Arenât you still in charge of the household?" countered Rebecca, displeased. "I only managed the household because Amelia was unwell. Now that she has recovered, she should resume her duties. Iâll go over the accounts tomorrow and hand everything back to her," Carissa replied. Amelia quickly interjected, "Iâm still not fully recovered. Besides, everyone is satisfied with how youâve been managing things. You should continue doing it." Carissa smiled mockingly. Everyone was satisfied because she had spent her own money to support them. Most of it went towards Rebeccaâs medical expenses. Sebastian Dalton was a renowned physician, and his medicine was costly. Only a few could afford his services. Rebeccaâs medicine cost over a hundred coins a month, amounting to more than a thousand coins a year. As for the other household expenses, Carissa occasionally subsidized them. For example, she would sometimes use fabrics and silks from her familyâs business to make new clothes for everyone throughout the year. She didnât mind it before, as she had really wished to spend her life with Barrett. However, circumstances had changed. She no longer wanted to be a fool. Carissa stood up and said, "Thatâs settled, then. Iâll hand over the accounts tomorrow and wonât be involved in household matters anymore." "Stop right there!" Rebecca's face darkened with anger. "Carissa, youâre being unreasonable. Men having multiple wives and concubines is normal. If you can't accept that, people will say you're narrow-minded and jealous." Carissaâs compliance over the past year had made the Warren family think she was easy to manipulate. They believed a few harsh words would always keep her in line. Carissaâs expression was calm, a stark contrast to her usual docility. "People can say whatever they want. I'm not concerned about their opinions." Rebecca was so angry that she struggled to breathe and coughed harshly for a long while. In the past, Carissa would have rushed to help her. She would pat the older woman's back and try to soothe her. But now, Carissa remained where she was. The soft evening light from the doorway highlighted her delicate, almost ethereal beauty. "Carissa, look how badly you've upset Mom," Serena said as she stepped forward. Her round, youthful face puffed with anger as she glared at Carissa. "This isnât even about you. Do you think your family is still as prestigious as it once was? Your parents and brothers are gone; you're the only one left. Aren't you afraid that Barrett will divorce you if you keep putting on airs like you're a young lady from a prestigious family?" Carissa looked at her sister-in-law, who was dressed in a pale yellow outfit that Carissa had procured for her in early autumn. Now, wearing the clothes Carissa had provided, Serena dared to question her authority. How utterly⌠unsensible of her. "Take off that dress youâre wearing before you try to lecture me," Carissa said coolly. Serenaâs cheeks flushed with anger. "I didnât beg you to get this dress for me. You can have it back if you donât want me to have it." "Fine. And donât forget the jewelry youâre wearing. I expect it all to be returned to me." After Carissa said that, her gaze swept across the room. The only one who seemed pleased with the situation was Charlotte. Everyone else looked grim. "If thereâs nothing else, Iâll be leaving." With that, Carissa turned and walked out decisively. Chapter 5 The Warren family members exchanged puzzled glances. None expected the usually agreeable Carissa to stand her ground so firmly this time. She even defied Rebecca, the matriarch of the family! âSheâll come around. She doesnât have any other choice,â Rebecca said coldly. That was true. With Carissa's family gone, she had no one to rely on except the Warren family. Besides, she was still Barrett's rightful wife, and it wasnât like she had been mistreated. - Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu returned to Northwatch Estate. The estate was bleak and covered in fallen leaves. After just half a year of neglect, the courtyard was overgrown with weeds that were taller than a person. Stepping back into the estate, Carissaâs heart ached fiercely. Six months ago, she had collapsed upon hearing that her family had been murdered. She had wept when she saw the lifeless bodies of her grandmother and motherâtheir corpses cold and devoid of warmth. Every corner of the estate had been stained with blood. Memorial plaques for her ancestors and mother had been placed at the estateâs family chapel. Carissa and Lulu prepared flowers to place on the plaques, their tears unceasing. Carissa knelt before her parentsâ memorials. Though her eyes were swollen from crying, they held a determined gaze. âDad, Mom, if you can hear me from heaven, please forgive your daughter for what she is about to do. Itâs not that I donât want a peaceful life with a husband and children, but Barrett is not someone I can trust with my life. Rest assured, I promise Lulu and I will live well.â Lulu knelt beside her, sobbing uncontrollably. After they were done, they boarded a carriage and headed straight for the palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. Lulu was distressed and said, âMy lady, the king might not see you. Maybe he thinks youâre here to oppose his edict about the marriage. You didnât eat last night or have breakfast today. Are you holding up okay? Should I go get you something to eat?â âIâm not hungry.â The only thing Carissa felt was the unwavering resolve to dissolve her marriage and return home. âPlease donât be so hard on yourself. Itâs not worth getting sick over. Why donât we just let it go? After all, youâre still the rightful wife and the lady of the Warren family. Even if General Yates is to be a legal wife, sheâll just be a glorified concubine at best. Maybe we should just endure it?â Lulu pleaded. Carissaâs gaze was cold. âLulu, if youâre going to talk like that, donât speak at all.â Lulu sighed, feeling lost and unsure of what else to do. She had hoped that once Barrett returned, Carissa would find some peace. But the situation had only worsened. - In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât see her. The edict has been issued, and I canât take it back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have made significant contributions.â âIf we speak of military achievements, the Marquis of Northwatch and General Sullivanâs contributions surpass all others,â Derek countered. Salvador remembered the Marquis of Northwatch, Hector Sinclair. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Carissa was a familiar face from those days, though she had been a delicate child. He still remembered her fair skin and endearing looks. Salvador had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers. When Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. Apart from his brother who was known as the Devil Monarch on the battlefield, the kingdom had no other capable generals. In the recent war with Westhaven, Dominic Sullivanâs third son had lost an arm. Dominic's seventh son had been murdered, though this had been kept secret. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants. I'll even give her a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â Chapter 6 Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Salvador remembered the Sinclair family. Knowing that Carissa was now the only one left stirred a feeling of pity in him. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "I have already issued the edict. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I implore you to issue another edict. I want to divorce General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "What? You want a divorce?" Salvador thought she had come to ask him to rescind the marriage edict. He never expected a plea for a divorce. Holding back tears, Carissa pleaded, "Your Majesty, General Warren and General Yates sought the marriage edict with their military achievements. "Today is the death anniversary of my father and brothers. I wish to seek an edict to divorce my husband based on my late family's military merits. Please, Your Majesty, I'm begging you." "Carissa, do you know what you'll face after the divorce?" Salvador asked, a complicated expression on his face. Carissa hadn't heard Salvador call her by name in a long time. When he was still the crown prince, he used to occasionally visit Northwatch Estate. He would always find some interesting little gifts to give her when he did. After Carissa later went to Meadow Ridge to study under her master, they never saw each other again. "I do," she affirmed. There was a hint of a smile on Carissa's stunning face. But no matter how one looked at it, the smile seemed tinged with irony. "I'm sure you know the saying that a true gentleman appreciates and helps others to fulfill their aspirations, right? Even though I'm not a gentleman, I don't want to hinder General Warren and General Yates from being together," Carissa added. "Carissa, there's no one left at Northwatch Estate. Are you really going to go back there? Have you thought about your future?" Salvador asked. "I returned to the estate today to visit my family's memorial plaques. Seeing how the estate has fallen into disrepair made me want to live there again. I'll adopt a son for my father's sake, so there will still be someone to honor his memory," Carissa explained. Salvador had thought she was being impulsive; he hadn't expected her to be so considerate. "You're Barrett's legal wife. Aurora can't undermine your position. You really don't need a divorce." Carissa looked up with tear-filled eyes that were firm with resolve. "Your Majesty, that's meaningless. I don't want to waste my life like this. I'm the only one left from the Marquis of Northwatch's' family. My father and brothers lived honorably and bravely throughout their lives. I don't want to settle for a life of mediocrity." "I know you have feelings for Barrett. Are you willing to let go?" Salvador asked. Feelings? Not really. Carissa simply admired military men, and her mother had wanted her to marry and lead a stable life. That was why she had agreed to the marriage. Carissa smiled. At this moment, she looked like a strong woman who would be able to flourish even in the most challenging circumstances. "If he can let go of me, then I can let go of him," she declared. Beneath her delicate appearance, she possessed an unyielding backbone. This stunned Salvador. He had never seen such a woman before. He felt a pang of confusion, remembering the carefree little girl who used to smile all day long. Now, she was married and soon to be abandoned. To the world, divorce still meant abandonment. This was especially true in Carissaâs situation, as Barrett had publicly sought the marriage edict. Being a woman was already difficult, and she would have it even harder. How would she negotiate future marriages? There was no one left in her family to do it for her. Thinking of this, Salvador recalled Hector's merits, especially how they had saved each other on the battlefield, and his heart softened towards Carissa. "Alright, I agree. You may leave now. In a few days, the edict of divorce will be sent to the general's residence," Salvador said. Carissa breathed a sigh of relief and bowed her head. "Thank you for your grace, Your Majesty!" As Salvador watched her, he was suddenly reminded of when she was a little girl, and his heart softened further. "Carissa, if anyone mistreats you in the future, come to the palace and see me." "Thank you, Your Majesty!" Carissa bowed once again. | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 293 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458293998_1696356974464897_6574490535769686259_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=rP1BEUQKJ1wQ7kNvgHIGCfu&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A4AayDzsT5aEFfPImG8qokS&oh=00_AYBe6Y2vWtxLSkYIcpHrTLUw6pe2YWSUKvcBzqWbvsKRRA&oe=67308D9F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete |
Page 137 of 166, showing 20 record(s) out of 3,309 total